Usool at Tafseer
Usool at Tafseer
Usool at Tafseer
Download more than 1200 Islamic books free in many languages. Click here: www.books4islam.com
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
INTRODUCTION
1
It was translated by Dr. M. Abdul Haq Ansari for Imaam Ibn Sa‘ood Islamic University in
Riyadh and later reprinted in England by Al-Hidaayah Press under the title, An Introduction to the
Principles of Tafseer.
2
Born 661 AH/1262 CE; died 728 AH/1327 CE.
3
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 191-2.
4
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 16.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Wakee‘ ibn al-Jarraah. Their tafseers were collections of the opinions of the
Prophet’s companions (sahaabah) and their students (taabi‘oon). They were
followed by Ibn Jareer at-Tabaree (d. 310 AH), whose Tafseer is considered the
greatest, as he was the first to analyze the opinions and choose the strongest; and
he analyzed the grammatical constructions and deduced rulings from the verses.
Concern for tafseer has continued until the present day, producing a large variety
of methodologies for Qur’aanic elucidation.
As for the other areas of ‘uloom al-Qur’aan, among the leading 9th century
writers were ‘Alee ibn al-Madeenee (Imaam al-Bukhaaree’s teacher), who wrote
on Asbaab an-Nuzool, and Aboo ‘Ubayd al-Qaasim ibn Salaam, who wrote on
abrogation. The leading scholar of the 10th century to write on the unusual
constructions of the Qur’aan was Aboo Bakr as-Sijistaanee, while the 11th
century scholar, ‘Alee ibn Sa‘eed al-Hoofee, produced a work on its grammatical
constructions in general. In the 12th century, the leading scholar to write on
Mubhamaat al-Qur’aan (Qur’aanic Ambiguities) was Abul-Qaasim ‘Abdur-
Rahmaan as-Sabeelee. He was followed by Ibn ‘Abdis-Salaam, who wrote on
Qur’aanic metaphor (majaaz al-Qur’aan), and ‘Alamud-Deen as-Sakhaawee, who
wrote on the recitations in the 13th century. 5
The scholars who wrote during this period sought to comprehensively cover
the topics they focused on. Consequently, those who wrote on ghareeb al-
Qur’aan, for example, would mention every single word in the Qur’aan which
was strange or of ambiguous meaning; and those who compiled works on
metaphors would investigate every type of word or phrase in the Qur’aan which
had allegorical meanings, and so on in the various branches of Qur’aanic fields of
learning. The vastness of the works made it impossible for any single individual
to master all fields, even if he spent his whole life and utilized all his energy. As a
result, later scholars longed for the evolution of a new science which would act
like an index or directory for all these fields. This became the field officially
known as ‘uloom al-Qur’aan. Although there is no record of any scholars writing
or attempting to write a compilation of this type before the 10th century, it was
collected in the intellects of the leading early scholars.
The biography of Imaam ash-Shaafi‘ee (d. 820 CE) contains an incident
which amply illustrates this point. When he was accused of being the leader of the
‘Alawee sect in Yemen and was brought in shackles and chains before Caliph
Haroon ar-Rasheed6 in Baghdaad, the Caliph asked him about his knowledge of
5
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 24-25.
6
Ruled 786-809 CE.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
7
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 25.
8
‘Ulum al-Qur’an, p. 6.
9
Shaykh az-Zarqaanee mistakenly entitled it, al-Burhaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, in his book
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan, vol. 1, p. 27-8. See the encyclopedic index of authors and their works, Kashf
ath-Thunoon, vol. 1, p. 242, for reference to the correct title of al-Hoofee’s work.
10
It is available in Daar al-Kutub al-Misreeyah, Egypt.
11
Edited by Tayyaar Qoolaaj and published in Beirut by Daar Saadir, 1975.
12
Edited by Muhammad Abul-Fadl Ibraaheem, published in Egypt by Ibraaheem ‘Eesaa al-
Baabee al-Halabee Press, 2nd edition in 1972 (1391 AH).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
13
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 27-30.
14
Published in Egypt by al-Manaar Press in 1915 (1334 AH) under the title, at-Tibyaan li ba‘d al-
Mabaahith al-Muta‘allaqah bil-Qur’aan.
15
Published under the title, Jawaahir al-Bayaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan.
16
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 31.
17
Published in Egypt by Daar Ihyaa al-Kutub al-‘Arabeeyah, 3rd ed., 1953.
18
Published in Beirut by Daar al-Qalam Press, 1971.
19
Published in Egypt in 1973.
20
Published in Beirut by al-Maktab al-Islaamee, 3rd ed., 1990.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
1
_________________________
ÇÊÑÈ ¼çmtR#uäö•è% ôìÎ7¨?$$sù çm»tRù&t•s% #sŒÎ*sù ÇÊÐÈ ¼çmtR#uäö•è%ur ¼çmyè÷Hsd $uZøŠn=tã ¨bÎ) )
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Verily, collecting the Qur’aan (for you) and reciting it (to you) is
My21 responsibility, so when I read it to you, listen to it. Then it is
upon Me to explain it.”22
Therefore, it was the Prophet’s job to explain the Qur’aan to his followers by his
actions, as well as his statements. Allaah stated this in the Qur’aan:
Consequently, the sahaabah all turned to the Prophet (r) whenever possible
during his lifetime for the tafseer (explanation, understanding, interpretation) of
the Qur’aan. For example, Ibn Mas‘ood related that when the following verse was
revealed:
“Those who believe and do not obscure their faith with transgression
(thulm), for them there is security, and they are rightly guided,”24
21
Literally, ‘Our.’ The ‘royal We’ is barely used in English, but it is a common feature of Arabic
speech, used to indicate the importance of the speaker. It is my standard practice to translate this
‘We’ as ‘I,’ since the literal translation is a frequent cause of confusion for English speakers.
22
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):17-9.
23
Soorah an-Nahl (16):44.
24
Soorah al-An‘aam (6):82.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
were free from error. However, when they approached the Prophet (r) about it,
he replied,
ﻨِﻪِ } ﯾَﺎ ﺑُﻨَﻲﱠ ﻻَ ﺗُﺸْﺮِكْ ﺑِﺎﻟﻠﱠﮫِ إِنﱠ ﻻِﺒﺎﻥﺎ ﻗﹶﺎلَ ﻟﹸﻘﹾﻤ ﻜﹶﻤﻭﺎ ﻫ ﺇِﻨﱠﻤﺎ ﺘﹶﻅﹸﻨﱡﻭﻥ ﻜﹶﻤﻭ ﻫﺱ) ﻟﹶﻴ
({ ٌاﻟﺸﱢﺮْكَ ﻟَﻈُﻠْﻢٌ ﻋَﻈِﯿﻢ
“ It is not as you all think. It is no more than what Luqmaan said to his son,
‘Verily, shirk (associating partners with God) is the greatest form of
thulm.’25”26
Thus the Prophet (r) clarified for them that the broader meaning of thulm was not
intended in the first verse; rather it was used to refer to shirk.
In this incident, the Prophet (r) explained the Qur’aan by the Qur’aan,
demonstrating the first step in the divinely ordained method of understanding and
interpretation of the Qur’aan that was established for all generations of Muslims
until the Day of Resurrection. After the Prophet’s death, the sahaabah turned to
those among themselves who were more gifted in understanding the Qur’aan and
who had been able to spend more time with the Prophet (r) for interpretation and
explanation of the Qur’aan.
Among the sahaabah who became the most noted for their ability to make
tafseer of the Qur’aan are the following: The four Righteous Caliphs,27 the
Prophet’s wife, ‘Aa’ishah bint Abee Bakr, Ibn Mas‘ood, Ibn ‘Abbaas, Ubayy ibn
Ka‘b, Zayd ibn Thaabit, Aboo Moosaa al-Ash‘aree, ‘Abdullaah ibn az-Zubayr,
Anas ibn Maalik, ‘Abdullaah ibn ‘Umar, Jaabir ibn ‘Abdullaah, and ‘Abdullaah
ibn ‘Amr ibn al-‘Aas. 28 Within the space of twenty-five years after the Prophet’s
death, the sahaabah carried Islaam to all corners of the known world, toppling in
the process the great empires of Persia and Byzantine. Wherever the Muslim
armies stopped their advance, some of the sahaabah would settle and begin
teaching those who came into Islaam the recitation and interpretation of the
Qur’aan. For this reason, the knowledge of tafseer spread throughout the Muslim
realm, and centers of Qur’aanic learning sprung up everywhere. Among the
people who gathered around the sahaabah were some outstanding individuals
who remained their students and absorbed their knowledge. These students
became known as taabi‘oon. Each sahaabee carried with him a portion of
25
Soorah Luqmaan (31):13.
26
Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 72, no. 226.
27
Aboo Bakr as-Siddeeq, ‘Umar ibn al-Khattaab, ‘Uthmaan ibn ‘Affaan, and ‘Alee ibn Abee
Taalib.
28
Al-Itqaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, vol. 2, p. 239.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
knowledge, some of which overlapped with that of others and some of which did
not. Consequently, some of the students traveled to other Islaamic centers to study
under other sahaabah, while others stayed with their teachers until their deaths.
Schools of Tafseer
The most notable centers of tafseer which evolved during this period were
those of Makkah, Madeenah, and ‘Iraaq. In Makkah, the tafseer school of Ibn
‘Abbaas became the most prominent. ‘Abdullaah ibn ‘Abbaas was considered to
be the greatest tafseer scholar among the sahaabah. He reported that once the
Prophet (r) hugged him and prayed for him as follows,
( { ِ } ﻟَﻢْ ﯾَﻜُﻦِ اﻟﱠﺬِﯾﻦَ ﻛَﻔَﺮُوا ﻣِﻦْ أَھْﻞِ اﻟْﻜِﺘَﺎبﻙﻠﹶﻴَﺃ ﻋ ﺃَﻗﹾﺭﻨِﻲ ﺃَﻥﺭ ﺃَﻤ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪ) ﺇِﻥ
“ Verily, Allaah, the Most Great and Glorious, has commanded me to recite to
you, ‘Lam yakunillatheena kafaroo.’ (Soorah al-Bayyinah).” When Ubayy
29
Collected by Ahmad (al-Musnad, no. 2274). A version mentioning only the first half of the
Prophet’s supplication on his behalf is reported in Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, p. 106, no. 145, and
Sahih Muslim, vol. 4, pp. 1320-1, no. 6055.
30
Collected by al-Haakim and by Ibn Sa‘d in at-Tabaqaat. See Siyar al-A‘laam an-Nubalaa’, vol.
3, p. 347.
31
Al-Itqaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, vol. 2, p. 242. It is interesting to note that all of these great
scholars were former slaves.
32
According to al-Waaqidee. Quoted in Al-Isaabah fee Tamyeez as-Sahaabah. Perhaps he meant
in Madeenah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
asked if Allaah had mentioned him by name, the Prophet (r) told him yes, and
Ubayy cried.33 Ubayy’s most notable students were Zayd ibn Aslam, Aboo al
‘Aaliyah, and Muhammad ibn Ka‘b al-Qurathee. 34
In ‘Iraaq, Ibn Mas‘ood headed the most prominent school of tafseer .
‘Abdullaah ibn Mas‘ood, the sixth person to enter Islaam, 35 was among the top
reciters of the Qur’aan. The Prophet (r) himself praised his recitation saying,
(. ٍﺩﺒ ﻋﻥِ ﺃُﻡﺓِ ﺍﺒﺍﺀﻠﹶﻰ ﻗِﺭ ﻋﺃْﻩﻘﹾﺭﺎ ﺃُﻨﹾﺯِلَ ﻓﹶﻠﹾﻴﺎ ﻜﹶﻤ ﻏﹶﻀﺁﻥﺃَ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﺭﻘﹾﺭ ﻴ ﺃَﻥﺏ ﺃَﺤﻥ) ﻤ
“Whoever wishes to recite the Qur’aan in the tender manner in which it was
revealed should recite it as Ibn Umm ‘Abd (Ibn Mas‘ood) does.” 36 As for his
knowledge of tafseer , Ibn Mas‘ood said, “By the One besides Whom there is no
other god, I know where and why every verse of Allaah’s book was revealed.”37
Among the many students of Ibn Mas‘ood who later became scholars in their
own right were al-Hasan al-Basree, ‘Alqamah ibn Qays, Masrooq, al-Aswad ibn
Yazeed, and ‘Aamir ash-Sha‘bee.38
Transmission of Tafseer
During this period, tafseer was taught by narration. That is, the sahaabah
who headed schools of tafseer would quote the sayings of the Prophet (r) which
explained the meanings of verses, or explain the historical context in which the
verses were revealed, or they would quote verses of pre-Islaamic poetry which
explained the meaning of some words that were no longer in common use. After
the era of the sahaabah, their students, the taabi‘oon, continued to teach by
narration in much the same way that they had learned. However, some of them
also began narrating along with their tafseers tales from Jewish and Christian
sources to further explain certain passages of the Qur’aan.
33
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 5, p. 97, no. 154) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 4, p.1313, no. 6031).
34
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p.339.
35
Sifah as-Safwah, vol.1, p. 395.
36
Reported by ‘Umar, Ibn Mas‘ood and other sahaabah and collected by Ahmad, Ibn Maajah
(vol. 1, p. 77, no. 138), al-Haakim and others. Authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh al-Jaami‘
as-Sagheer , vol. 2, p. 1034.
37
Sahih Muslim, vol. 4, p. 1312, no. 6023.
38
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 339.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
It should be noted that some compilation of tafseer took place during the era
of the taabi‘oon. The most noteworthy example is that of Mujaahid ibn Jabr (642-
722 CE/40-103 AH), a student of Ibn ‘Abbaas. Mujaahid compiled the earliest
known tafseer ; however, no copy of his work has reached us. The significance of
Mujaahid’s tafseer can be appreciated from his following statement, “I read the
whole Qur’aan to Ibn ‘Abbaas three times. During each reading, I stopped at the
end of every verse and asked him about whom and why it was revealed.”39
Towards the end of the Umayyad dynasty,40 the systematic compilation of
tafseer began. The scholars of hadeeth began compiling the sayings and actions of
the Prophet (r) in chapters according to their subject matter, and the chapter on
tafseer was one of them. Some of these scholars paid special attention to the
narration of tafseer attributed to the Prophet (r), the sahaabah and the taabi‘oon.
The foremost among them were Yazeed ibn Haaroon as-Salamee (d. 737 CE/118
AH), Shu‘bah ibn al-Hajjaaj (d. 777 CE/160 AH), Sufyaan ibn ‘Uyaynah (d. 814
CE/198AH), ‘Abdur-Razzaaq ibn Hammaam (d. 827 CE/211 AH), and ‘Abd ibn
Humayd (d. 864 CE/250 AH).41 However, no tafseer of the complete Qur’aan
took place at this time. 42
Near the end of the ninth century CE, the field of tafseer evolved into an
independent Islaamic science. This generation of scholars was the first to compile
tafseers of the Qur’aan according to the order of the written text. The earliest
tafseer to reach us was authored by Ibn Jareer at-Tabaree (839-923 CE/225-310
AH), who comes from this era. Other tafseers were written by Ibn Maajah (d. 886
CE/272 AH), Ibn Abee Haatim (d. 939 CE/327 AH), Ibn Hibbaan (d. 980 CE/369
AH), al-Haakim (d. 1014 CE/404 AH), and Ibn Mardawayh (d. 1020 CE/410
AH).43 All of these scholars were also famous for compilations of hadeeth, most
of which have reached us intact. Occasionally, tafseers were attributed to scholars
of the previous generation, known as atbaa‘ at-taabi‘een (the students of the
taabi‘oon). These tafseers also mentioned the legal rulings deduced from the
verses and the breakdown of grammatical constructions where necessary.
Although the next generation of scholars followed the same general format as
their predecessors, many of them deleted the chains of narration from their
39
Collected by Ibn Nu‘aym in Hilyah al-Awliyaa’ and by Ibn ‘Asaakir. See Siyar al-A‘laam an-
Nubalaa’, vol. 4, p. 450.
40
The Umayyads were overthrown in 132 AH (750 CE).
41
The most accessible hadeeth collection on tafseer for the English-speaking reader is volume six
of Sahih Al-Bukhari.
42
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp.340-1.
43
Ibid., p.341.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
tafseers, leaving only the names of the sahaabah or taabi‘oon and their
interpretations; for example, Bahr al-’Uloom by Aboo al-Layth as-Samarqandee
(d. 983 CE/372 AH). Great stress was placed on literary forms and grammatical
constructions in many of these tafseers. The various forms of recitation, without
their chains of narration, were also recorded and used as explanations of the text.
However, they also included in their tafseers a vast number of anonymous
statements and opinions without any mention of who made them. Consequently,
many of these tafseers are confusing. Accurate accounts and interpretations were
mixed with inaccurate ones without any distinction between them.
In addition, the door of tafseer according to personal opinion was opened.
Works of tafseer soon began to reflect various trends of thought in Muslim
society. By the eleventh and twelfth centuries, the major works of Greek
philosophy and science that had been translated in the previous centuries began to
have an effect on all of the various Islaamic fields of study. Philosophical schools
of thought like that of the Mu‘tazilees (Rationalists) had evolved which boldly
threatened pure Islaamic thought. Tafseers full of philosophical and scientific
terminology, like al-Kash-shaaf of az-Zamakhsharee (1075-1144 CE/467-538
AH) or Mafaateeh al-Ghayb of Fakhrud-Deen ar-Raazee (1149-1210 CE/544-606
AH), and tafseers expressing the thoughts of various heretical sects also appeared
during this period. For example, the Twelver Shee‘ah tafseer of Mullah Muhsin
al-Kaash made the verses of the Qur’aan speak of twelve infallible imaams, the
imaginary walaayah (governorship) of the Prophet’s son-in-law ‘Alee and the
claimed apostasy of all of the Prophet’s companions except a handful; and the
Soofee tafseer of Ibn al-‘Arabee (d. 1240 CE/638 AH) made Qur’aanic verses
voice his pantheistic ideology of Allaah being all and all being Allaah.44
There was also a trend towards specialization among the Islaamic scholars,
resulting from the evolution of Islaamic learning into a multiplicity of disciplines.
Consequently, tafseers like those of al-Jassaas (917-980 CE/304-369 AH) and al-
Qurtubee (d. 1273 CE/671 AH) concentrated on the deduction of fiqh (Islaamic
law) from the Qur’aanic passages according to their respective math-habs
(schools of fiqh). Likewise, ath-Tha‘labee, who specialized in tales of ancient
44
Muhammad ibn ‘Alee ibn Muhammad ibn al-‘Arabee was from Andalus (Spain), but he
travelled extensively and died in ‘Iraaq. A prolific writer, he authored some 300 books, the most
famous being al-Futoohaat al-Makkeeyah and Fusoos al-Hikam. He wrote nine different tafseers
of the Qur’aan, among them Tarjumaan al-Ashwaaq, for which he wrote a number of
commentaries.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
I have seen approximately ten different opinions concerning the tafseer of the
verse:
( ÇÐÈ tûüÏj9!$žÒ9$#
“Not the path of those on whom is [Your] anger nor those who have
gone astray,”46
in spite of the fact that the Prophet (r) and his companions (sahaabah) and
their students (taabi‘oon) all related that the verse referred to none other than
the Jews and the Christians. And (one of the early scholars) Ibn Abee Haatim
said concerning this verse, “I know of no disagreement among the scholars of
tafseer about it.”47
Some of the scholars of this and later periods confined themselves to making
abridgements of earlier works while others were satisfied to write footnotes for
earlier works. It should also be noted that in spite of the deviation and stagnation
which afflicted the field of tafseer, as well as all of the Islaamic sciences, there
were a number of great scholars who held high the banner of pure Islaamic
45
At-Tafseer wa al-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 145-8.
46
Soorah al-Faatihah (1):7.
47
Quoted in Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 345.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
thought. Thus, it should not be surprising to find that the most highly acclaimed
tafseer of all times was produced by a scholar of this time, Tafseer al-Qur’aan al-
‘Atheem by al-Haafith ibn Katheer (d. 1373 CE/774 AH).
In this century, a new form of tafseer has evolved in which the authors have
tried to apply the passages of the Qur’aan to the needs of the twentieth century.
For example, tafseers like Tafseer al-Manaar , started by Muhammad ‘Abduh (d.
1905 CE) and completed up to Soorah Yoosuf by his student Muhammad Rasheed
Ridaa,48 or Fee Thilaal al-Qur’aan by Syed Qutb point out the Qur’aanic
foundations for human society, legislation, and scientific theories.
Both these tafseers have their critics. ‘Abduh was interested in reforming
Muslim societies to meet the challenge of the west, and he called for the
abandonment of taqleed as the starting point for that reform. He stressed the need
for approaching the Qur’aan fresh, unencumbered by past inter-pretations of it.
Neither he nor Ridaa would look at anyone else’s tafseer until they had finished
writing their own tafseers of a particular passage.49 In his zeal to accommodate
scientific theories, ‘Abduh interpreted angels as being synonymous with natural
forces, which led him to a symbolic interpretation of the story of Aadam and
Iblees.50 His student denied that the Prophet (r) performed any miracles other
than conveying the Qur’aan. Both he and his student rejected a number of
hadeeths reported by al-Bukhaaree and Muslim, claiming that they were weak.51
Ridaa was, however, more learned in hadeeth than ‘Abduh and relied on hadeeths
more than him. 52 Both of them gave their intellects great freedom to interpret as
they saw fit.
Syed Qutb lived at a time when the Islaamic caliphate had just been
abolished. The Islaamic world had been divided into small countries with legal
systems that were the product of European colonialism. He felt a deep outrage at
Islaamic societies’ abandonment of the Sharee‘ah in ruling their affairs. His
interpretations of the meaning of tawheed focused on Allaah’s sole right to
formulate the laws for the rule of human society. His stress of this point led to the
48
Muhammad Rasheed (dtook notes from ‘Abduh’s tafseer lectures, then wrote them up in his
own words, and published them with his approval in his magazine al-Manaar . ‘Abduh died after
having completed from Soorah al-Faatihah until verse 126 of Soorah an-Nisaa’, then his student
continued until his own death in 1935. (Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 321.)
49
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 322, and at-Tafseer wa al-Mufassiroon, vol. 2, 598-9.
50
Tafseer al-Manaar , vol. 1, p. 167, quoted in at-Tafseer wa al-Mufassiroon, vol. 2, p. 611.
51
At-Tafseer wa al-Mufassiroon, vol. 2, pp. 615-7, 628.
52
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 321-2.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
neglect of other aspects of tawheed and of the dangers posed by forms of shirk
other than shirk in legislation. He seems to have actually been confused about the
difference between tawheed al-ulooheeyah and tawheed ar-ruboobeeyah.53 His
critics also say that he laid the seeds for today’s modern takfeer movements with
his blanket condemnation of contemporary Islaamic societies as having nothing to
do with Islaam, and with his praise of revolutionary movements in Islaamic
history.54 Despite these shortcomings, he presented a vigorous Islaamic critique of
the flaws of secularism and the European civilization that spawned it at a time
when most Muslims were apologetic about Islaam.
“For any parable they bring, I will bring you the truth and a better
explanation (tafseeran).”55
However, in Qur’aanic sciences, this term is defined as a branch of knowledge by
which the Qur’aan is understood, its meanings explained, and its points of law
and wisdom derived. 56
On the other hand, the word ta’weel, which comes from the verb awwala,
literally means interpretation. When the word ta’weel is used in the context of a
command, it means its execution or implementation, as in the hadeeth reported
by ‘Aa’ishah in which she said, “Allaah’s Messenger (r) used to implement
53
See Fee Thilaal al Qur’aan, vol. 4, pp. 1846 and 1852.
54
See Adwaa’un Islaameeyah ‘alaa ‘Aqeedah Syed Qutb wa Fikrih, pp. 43-5, 60-104.
55
Soorah al-Furqaan (25):33.
56
Al-Itqaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, vol. 2, p. 174.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Glorify Your Lord and ask His forgiveness, for verily, He is Oft-
Forgiving.” 58
That is, Allaah ridicules those who do not accept revelation by asking them if they
are foolishly awaiting the occurrence of the final hour and its signs, the Judgment,
Paradise, and the Hellfire, when it will be too late.
57
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, p. 434, no. 781) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 255-6, no. 981).
58
Soorah an-Nasr (110):3.
59
Soorah al-A‘raaf (7):52-3.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
‘Pé& £`èd ìM»yJs3øt’C ×M»tƒ#uä çm÷ZÏB |=»tGÅ3ø9$# y7ø‹n=tã tAt“Rr& ü“Ï%©!$# uqèd )
$tB tbqãèÎ6®KuŠsù Ô÷÷ƒy— óOÎgÎ/qè=è% ’Îû tûïÏ%©!$# $¨Br'sù ( ×M»ygÎ7»t±tFãB ã•yzé&ur É=»tGÅ3ø9$#
“It is He who revealed the Book to you. In it are clear verses which are
the essence of the Book and others which are obscure. As for those
whose hearts are twisted, they follow what is obscure seeking to sow
discord and searching for its interpretation (ta’weelahu).”60
Hence, the early scholars of tafseer used the words tafseer and ta’weel
interchangeably. For example, Ibn Jareer at-Tabaree, in his tafseer , commonly
introduced each section with the phrase, “The opinion concerning the ta’weel
(explanation) of the statement of the Exalted.”61
In later centuries, when deviant and heretical explanations abounded, the term
ta’weel was used by the scholars of that time to justify them and give them an air
of legitimacy. They defined ta’weel as the shifting of an expression from its
obvious meaning to one of its likely meanings due to its context;62 that is, the
interpretation of a passage by other than its obvious meaning for whatever reason
a scholar considered relevant. For example, scholars of this period under
Mu‘tazilee (Rationalist) influence explained away the word ‘hand’ in the
following verse, which refers to an oath taken by the sahaabah:
60
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):7.
61
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp.123-4.
62
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 326.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
They interpreted it as being Allaah’s help and support for the simple reason that,
as they put it, Allaah could not possibly have a hand. This ‘ta’weel’ was based on
the false premise that the attribution of a hand to Allaah automatically implied
concep-tualizing Him in human form. However, in the same way that referring to
Allaah as a living being (al-Hayy) does not in any way make Him humanlike,
because His life is in no way like our life, referring to Allaah’s hand as a real hand
does not make Him humanlike, for his hand is in no way like our hands. It should
be noted, however, that the affirmation by Ahl as-Sunnah wa al-Jamaa‘ah that
Allaah has a real hand does not mean that they understand His hand to be a body
part.64
Its written and recited forms have been preserved without even the slightest
change for over fourteen hundred years, as has been mentioned in previous
63
Soorah al-Fat-h (48):10.
64
See Sharh al‘Aqeedah at-Tahaaweeyah, by Abul-‘Izz al-Hanafee, p. 220: “However, it may not
be said about these attributes [i.e., the hands, eyes and face of Allaah] that they are organs, limbs,
instruments or essential components, because Allaah is the Unique, the One Who needs no one but
is needed by all. He can not be conceived of as being composed of components, whereas ‘limbs’
and ‘organs’ carry the connotation of divisibility.”
65
Soorah al-Hijr (15):9.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
chapters. This cannot be said about the Gospel of Prophet Jesus (r), nor the books
of the Old Testament attributed to earlier prophets, nor any other scripture
revealed by Allaah. However, Allaah’s protection of the Qur’aan did not stop
there; He also safeguarded the original meaning. If the protection of the Qur’aan’s
meaning had not taken place, deviants would have turned the Book of Allaah into
a jumble of symbols, riddles and codes open to a multiplicity of interpretations,
and its original meaning would have been lost. Allaah preserved the meaning of
the Qur’aan by explaining some of its generalities within the Qur’aan itself and by
entrusting the tafseer of the remainder to His Messenger, Muhammad ibn
Abdillaah (r) (570-632 CE).
The sahaabah (companions) were taught to seek their understanding of the
Qur’aan first from the Qur’aan itself, then from the explanations and applications
of the Prophet (r) and from their own intimate understanding of the language of
the Qur’aan. After the Prophet’s death, those who entered Islaam as new converts
depended first upon the Qur’aan to explain itself, then they depended on the
sahaabah to explain the Qur’aan to them. The sahaabah would inform their
students among the taabi‘oon of the circumstances in which the verses were
revealed, the interpretation given by the Prophet’s statements and his actions, and
finally they would explain the meanings of some words which may not have been
familiar or which may have had a different meaning to Arabs outside of the
Arabian Peninsula. With the passing of the era of the sahaabah, the scholars
among the taabi‘oon shouldered the grave respon-sibility of conveying the
original meanings of the Qur’aan to the next generation of Muslims exactly as
they had received them. It was the third generation after the Prophet (r) which
began the process of gathering and recording the various narrations of tafseer
from the taabi‘oon.
From the above-mentioned methodology of the Prophet (r) and his
companions and that of the early generations of Muslim scholars which followed
them, the following steps have been deduced by orthodox scholars as being the
necessary conditions for making correct tafseer of the Qur’aan:
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
66
Soorah at-Taariq (86):1-3.
67
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):1.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
¾ÏmÎ/ «!$# ÎŽö•tóÏ9 ¨@Ïdé& !$tBur Í•ƒÌ“Yσø:$# ãNøtm:ur ãP¤$!$#ur èptGøŠyJø9$# ãNä3ø‹n=tæ ôMtBÌh•ãm )
Another example can be seen in the verse in which Allaah describes Himself,
saying:
(ã•»|Áö/F{$# çmà2Í‘ô‰è? žw )
This verse implies that Allaah will not be seen in either this world or the next.
However, Allaah later describes the believers in the next life as:
68
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):3.
69
Soorah al-An‘aam (6):103.
70
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
(ÏmŠÏù (#qàÿn=tG÷z$# “Ï%©!$# ÞOçlm; tûÎiüt7çFÏ9 žwÎ) |=»tGÅ3ø9$# y7ø‹n=tã $uZø9t“Rr& !$tBur )
The sahaabah understood this clearly and always turned to the Prophet (r) for
clarification whenever they were in doubt about the meaning of any of the
Qur’aanic passages. In fact, most of the fine details of salaah, zakaah, sawm,
hajj, inheritance laws, etc. were explained either by the Prophet’s statements or
practical demonstrations and applications (the Sunnah). Thus, the Prophet’s
explanations of Qur’aanic passages are referred to as the tafseer of the Qur’aan by
the Sunnah. For example, in Soorah al-Faatihah, the Prophet (r) explained that
“al-maghdoobi ‘alayhim” (those on whom is Allaah’s anger) are the Jews, and
71
Soorah al-Mutaffifeen (83):15.
72
Soorah an-Nahl (16):44.
73
Soorah an-Nahl (16):64.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“ad-daalleen” (those astray) are the Christians. 74 On one occasion he recited the
verse:
He then said,
(. ﻲﻤﺓﹶ ﺍﻟﺭ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﻭ ﺃَ ﹶﻻ ﺇِﻥﻲﻤﺓﹶ ﺍﻟﺭ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﻭ ﺃَ ﹶﻻ ﺇِﻥﻲﻤﺓﹶ ﺍﻟﺭ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﻭ) ﺃَ ﹶﻻ ﺇِﻥ
“ Verily force is shooting.” He repeated it three times.76
In another narration, he explained that the verse:
74
Reported by ‘Adee ibn Haatim and collected by at-Tirmithee and Ahmad. Rated hasan by al-
Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol. 3, pp. 19-20, no. 2353.
75
Soorah al-Anfaal (8):60.
76
Reported by ‘Uqbah ibn ‘Aamir and collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 3, p. 1060, no.
4711). The word used in the hadeeth is ramy, which could mean shooting an arrow or throwing a
spear. It can also be applied to firing a gun or a rocket.
77
Soorah al-Kawthar (108):1.
78
Reported by Anas and collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 220, no. 790) and Ahmad.
79
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):19
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Ibn ’Abbaas explained that the statement, “Then it is for Me to explain it,”
means, “upon your tongue [O Muhammad].”80 Consequently, no other human
interpretation can be given precedence over that of the Prophet (r).
he replied, “It refers to the face and hands.”82 On another occasion, after reciting
the verse,
80
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 422, no. 450.
81
Soorah an-Noor (24): 31.
82
Collected by Ibn Abee Shaybah in al-Musannaf, vol. 4, p. 283, and al-Bayhaqee in as-Sunan al-
Kubraa . Al-Albaanee ruled in Jilbaab al-Mar’ah al-Muslimah, pp. 59-60, that the isnaad of this
statement is saheeh.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇÍÍÈ tbrã•Ïÿ»s3ø9$# ãNèd y7Í´¯»s9'ré'sù ª!$# tAt“Rr& !$yJÎ/ Oä3øts† óO©9 `tBur )
“And whoever does not judge by what Allaah has revealed, is a kaafir
(disbeliever).”83
Ibn ‘Abbaas said, “It is a form of kufr (disbelief) less than real kufr.” 84
However, the tafseer transmitted from the Prophet (r) and the sahaabah did
not cover all of the verses of the Qur’aan. The Prophet (r) explained only what
was unclear to the sahaabah, and they, in turn, only explained what was unclear
to the taabi‘oon. But with each succeeding generation, more areas became unclear
due to the evolution of the language. Hence, the taabi‘oon had to make further
explanations after the passing of the sahaabah’s era. These explanations are
considered a part of tafseer by aathaar and should be given precedence over
personal opinions where there is unanimity among them. Where they differed,
none of their opinions is given preference over the others unless it is supported by
the language.
During the era of the taabi‘oon, many Christians and Jews became Muslim.
As a result, some of the taabi‘oon narrated tales from Jewish and Christian
sources in their explanations of the Qur’aan. Such narrations became known as
Israa’eeleeyaat. In later generations, the books of tafseer became filled with such
narrations, many of which could not be traced to any reliable source.
83
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):44.
84
Collected by al-Haakim, vol. 2, p. 313. A similar statement was collected by Ibn Jareeer in his
Tafseer, vol. 4, p. 597, no. 12068. This issue is one of the raging controversies of our time, the
question being: Does Ibn ‘Abbaas’s statement apply to rulers in our time, who rule by mixtures of
Sharee‘ah law and man-made law? The position of most scholars seems to be that when the ruler
believes that man-made laws are better than or as good as the Sharee‘ah, or that even though they
aren’t as good as the Sharee‘ah, it is permissible to rule by them, then he is a kaafir who has left
Islaam. If, however, he applies man-made laws while believing that he is sinful in doing so, his
kufr is kufr of actions, which makes him a major sinner, but doesn’t place him out of the fold of
Islaam. See at-Tah-theer min Fitnah at-Takfeer by Shaykh al-Albaanee, who provides copious
documentation from the statements of classical and modern salafee scholars to support his
position.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
vocabulary fell into disuse. This natural process necessitated the explanation of
some of the Qur’aanic words according to their literal and grammatical meanings.
Consequently, this period witnessed the appearance of dictionaries written
specifically to deal with Qur’aanic Arabic vocabulary and philology. In cases
where words had more than one meaning, this step created differences of opinion
which could only be solved by finding some support in the Sunnah. For example,
“lams” literally means to touch, but figuratively it means sexual intercourse.
Thus, the later scholars were of two basic opinions concerning the following
verse,
Imaams ash-Shaafi‘ee and Maalik held that it meant the touch of the hand, though
each imaam added certain stipulations to it. On the other hand, Imaam Aboo
Haneefah ruled that it meant sexual intercourse. However, the Prophet’s wives
reported that he kissed them before performing salaah, which indicated that
touching was not intended by this verse. 86
The four above-mentioned methods come under the general title of tafseer
bir-riwaayah or tafseer bil-ma’thoor (tafseer based on narration) and, as such,
leave little room for argument. Although the fourth step is oftentimes based on
narrations from earlier generations, at other times it can be highly opinionated and
controversial. For example, Yusuf Ali translates the word “burooj” used in the
85th soorah as “the Zodiacal signs,” while Pickthall translates it as “Mansions of
the Stars,” but says in his introduction to the soorah that it “is applied to the signs
of the zodiac.” Thus, according to them, Allaah is making an oath by the zodiacal
signs. Some English-speaking Muslims have taken this to be indirect support for
astrology. However, “burooj” originally only meant “star con-figuration,” and it
was not until later times that it was used to refer to the imaginary figures of the
85
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):43.
86
The hadeeth is reported by ‘Aa’ishah and collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol.
1, p. 43, no. 179), at-Tirmithee, Ibn Maajah and Ahmad. Al-Albaanee authenticated it in Saheeh
Sunan Abee Daawood, vol. 1, p. 36, no. 165.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
zodiac that pagan Babylonians and Greeks superimposed on them. Astrology has
been forbidden by the Prophet (r) in no uncertain terms, as it falls under the
general prohibition on visiting fortunetellers. The Prophet (r) said,
87
The addition is from the version of Aboo Daawood.
88
Collected by at-Tirmithee and Ibn Maajah. A similar hadeeth was collected by Aboo Daawood
(Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 3, p. 1095, no. 3895) and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan
Abee Daawood, vol. 2, p 739, no. 3304.
89
Reported by Aboo Hurayrah and collected by Ahmad, Ibn Jareer in his Tafseer and Aboo
Ya‘laa. Authenticated by al-Albaanee in Silsilah al Ahaadeeth as-Saheehah, vol. 4. pp. 26-8.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
would be undermined from its base. Thus, the only acceptable tafseer is that
which adheres to the following sequence: tafseer of Qur’aan by the Qur’aan, then
by the Sunnah, then by the sayings of the sahaabah, then by language, and finally
by opinion, as long as it is based on the preceding four methods and does not
contradict any of them.
Deviant Tafseers
In order to clarify the potential danger and corruption inherent in tafseer by
unsubstantiated opinion, the following examples of deviant tafseers have been
collected from various movements, sects, and philosophical schools from the
distant past to the present. From the tenth century CE (4th century AH), some
Soofees have interpreted “Pharaoh” to mean the heart in Allaah’s command to
Prophet Moosaa:
as it is the heart which oppresses every man, causing him to transgress. Others
interpreted Allaah’s command to Prophet Moosaa:
( x8$|Átã È,ø9r&ur )
as a command to throw aside the material world and only depend on Allaah.
These spiritualistic tafseers are indicative of the Soofee movement’s
overemphasis of the spiritual over the material.
90
Soorah an-Naazi‘aat (79):17.
91
Soorah an-Naml (27):10.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
öNs9urr& tA$s% ( 4’tAöqyJø9$# Ç‘ósè? y#ø‹Ÿ2 ‘ÏRÍ‘r& Éb>u‘ ÞO¿Ïdºt•ö/Î) tA$s% øŒÎ)ur )
“And (remember) when Ibraaheem said, ‘My Lord, show me how You
give life to the dead.’ [Allaah] replied, ‘Do you not believe?’
Ibraaheem said, ‘Yes, but (I am asking You) in order that my heart
may be at rest.”92
It was claimed that Ibraaheem had a friend whom he referred to as his “heart”
and, thus, the true meaning of the verse was, “Yes, but I am asking You in order
that my friend may be at ease.”93 This interpretation was considered necessary to
explain away the doubt which Ibraaheem felt in his heart, as it seemed
inconsistent with prophethood, according to the Rationalists.
The Shee‘ah tafseers of the late ‘Abbaasid era, under the influence of their
inordinate obsession with the Prophet’s descendants, interpreted the verse:
“He has let the two seas flow freely and they meet,”94
92
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):260.
93
This tafseer given by Ibn Fawrak is quoted in Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 358.
94
Soorah ar-Rahmaan (55):19.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 30
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
zOs?$yzur «!$# tAqß™§‘ `Å3»s9ur öNä3Ï9%y`Íh‘ `ÏiB 7‰tnr& !$t/r& JptèC tb%x. $¨B )
( z`¿ÍhŠÎ;¨Y9$#
khaatam does not mean seal, as most translate it, but ring. Thus, they claimed that
just as the ring beautifies the finger, the Prophet Muhammad (r) was the
beautification of prophethood. Therefore, the meaning of the verse is that Prophet
Muhammad (r) was the most superior of the prophets but not the last.98 They also
assert that even if the word khaatam were taken to mean “seal,” it would be like
the seal placed on an envelope sealing its contents, but not limiting them. These
interpretations were made to validate the claim of their founder, Ghulam Ahmad,
to prophethood. They also distorted the following verse in reference to Prophet
‘Eesaa:
95
Soorah ar-Rahmaan (55):22.
96
Ibn Baabooyah in al-Khisaal. Quoted in Bihaar al-Anwaar , vol. 24, pp. 97-9, nos. 1-7.
97
Soorah al-Ahzaab (33):40.
98
Qadiyaniyat, p. 306.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 31
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( Ïmø‹s9Î) ª!$# çmyèsù§‘ @t/ … öNçlm; tmÎm7ä© `Å3»s9ur çnqç7n=|¹ $tBur çnqè=tFs% $tBur )
“They did not crucify him nor did they kill him, but it was made to
seem so to them....But Allaah raised him up to Himself.”99
They claimed that “raised him up” meant a figurative raising, as used in the verse:
This interpretation was necessary in order for them to prove their doctrine that
‘Eesaa died a natural death on earth after marrying and having children and being
buried in Kashmir, and that Ghulam Ahmad was the promised messiah whose
return was prophesied.101
Even more recently in America, Elijah Muhammad, founder of the Elijah sect
and claimant to Prophethood (d. 1975), interpreted the verse,
“On that day when the trumpet is blown, I will assemble the criminals
blue-eyed,”102
as proof that the inhabitants of the fire will all be white people. This interpretation
was used to support the Elijah doctrine that Allaah, God, was a black man, that all
99
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):157-8.
100
Soorah al-Inshiraah (94):4.
101
Shorter Encyclopaedia of Islaam, p. 24.
102
Soorah Taa Haa (20):102.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 32
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
black people were gods and that all white people were devils. 103 Although the
word zurq literally means blue, it was used to refer to the clouding of the cornea
due to certain eye diseases which gives the eye a bluish-grey tinge. Hence, a
more accurate translation would have been “bleary-eyed.”
According to Elijah, since the white man resembles the black man, he was
referred to as “mankind” in the Qur’aan, that is, a kind of man!104 Therefore, in
the verse:
“We” was interpreted by Elijah to refer to the black men/gods who supposedly
created the white race (mankind).107
These few examples of tafseers based solely on sectarian opinions clearly
show the incoherence and deception that result from the disregard for the correct
method of tafseer. The Qur’aan becomes a voice for each sect’s deviant and
heretical claims. The Qur’aan is manipulated mercilessly, as there are no logical
boundaries nor coherent rules by which the founders of these sects abide; hence,
the same verse may have a multiplicity of meanings for them. Whatever
interpretation promotes their ideas become correct. For them, the Qur’aan is no
longer a book of guidance, but a book containing the hidden secrets of their sect,
which only their leaders and the specially initiated can unlock.
103
Message to the Black Man in America , p. 14.
104
I.e., quasi-human.
105
See footnote 23 on page 16 for an explanation of the meaning of ‘We’ when used by Allaah for
himself.
106
Soorah al-Hujuraat (49):13.
107
Message to the Black Man in America , p. 118.
108
One who makes tafseer of the Qur’aan.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 33
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
1. Correct Belief
The mufassir first and foremost must possess a true belief in Islaam for his or
her tafseer to be pure and free from heresy or gross errors. Sincerely believing in
Islaam does not automatically mean that one who does so has true belief in
Islaam. A true or correct belief exists only when one’s conception of Islaam
coincides with that of the Prophet (r) and his companions. Ignorance of what
constitutes correct belief in Islaam will almost certainly lead the mufassir into
incorrect explanations. Such an individual will be unable to distinguish between a
correct interpretation and an incorrect one. Consequently, he or she will have to
rely on their personal judgment, which would be impaired due to their ignorance.
Correct belief is also non-sectarian. Such a belief frees the mufassir from the
damaging influence of philosophies, schools of thought (math-habs), movements,
and sects.109 The mufassir does not approach the Qur’aan with preconceived ideas
and notions for which he or she wishes to find support in the Qur’aan. Such an
approach invariably leads to misinterpretations and sectarian explanations.
2. Correct Methodology
All honest attempts at tafseer must begin with the tafseer of the Qur’aan by
Qur’aan itself. What remains unexplained must then be sought in the Sunnah. If
the tafseer still cannot be found, the explanations of the sahaabah and their
students must then be turned to. That which is left after the preceding steps can
be found in the language of the Qur’aan. Such an approach to tafseer takes into
account Allaah’s role as the revealer and explainer of His revelation, the
Prophet’s role as the practical interpreter of Allaah’s revelation, the sahaabah and
their students’ roles as the conveyers of Allaah’s revelation and the Prophet’s
109
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 329-30.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 34
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
interpretation and application of it, and the role of classical Arabic as the vehicle
in which the revelation and its explanation were transmitted.
Any other approach negates one or more of these vital roles and implies
either a claim of direct revelation from God or an understanding superior to that
of the Prophet (r) and his companions. A brief glance at the tafseer of those
ignoring these steps will expose their claims to divine revelation cloaked in terms
like “ilhaam” (inspiration) and “ kashf” (illumination).
3. Correct Knowledge
The mufassir must have working knowledge of classical Arabic, its
grammatical constructions, and its figures of speech, because this is the language
of the Qur’aan. Any tafseer which is based solely on a translation of some of the
meanings of the Qur’aan will be liable to distortion. As Mujaahid, the student of
Ibn ‘Abbaas, said, “It is not allowable for anyone who believes in Allaah and the
Last Day to explain Allaah’s Book if he is not knowledgeable in the Arabic
language.”110 The mufassir should also know the other Islaamic sciences which
are connected in one way or another to the Qur’aan, such as hadeeth and fiqh. He
should be familiar with the science of hadeeth in order to make sure that
explanations attributed to the Prophet (r) or his companions that he uses in his
tafseer are authentic. He should also know the fundamental principles of fiqh
(usool al-fiqh) in order to accurately extract or deduce Islaamic law from its
passages. Without a correct understanding of these two sciences, the mufassir
could not possibly escape including in his tafseer a wealth of misinformation,
since the body of weak and fabricated narrations is quite vast and the schools of
fiqh (Islaamic law) and their methods are many and varied.
110
Quoted in Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 331.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 35
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
2
_________________________
BOOKS OF TAFSEER
T he books of tafseer have been divided into two general categories according
to the emphasis of their authors in their explanations. The tafseer s of those
who restricted their expla-nations to transmitting what was explained in the
Qur’aan or stated by the Prophet (r), his companions, and their students were
referred to as tafseer bir-riwaayah or tafseer bil-ma’thoor (tafseer according to
transmission). The authors of such tafseers also avoided unfounded interpretations
and unnecessary expla-nations and always accepted authentic narrations. This is
not to say that such tafseers are totally free of personal judgment and opinion, for
any tafseer , of necessity, must reflect the opinion of the individual who compiles
it. But in this case, personal opinion was kept to a minimum.
On the other hand, those tafseers in which the authors often relied on their
personal opinions for explanations, inter-pretations and deductions were called
tafseer bid-diraayah or tafseer bir-ra’y (tafseer according to opinion). In some of
these types of tafseers, narrated explanations from the Prophet (r), the
sahaabah,and their students (taabi‘oon) are mentioned prior to personal
interpretation, and the deductions or opinions are in agreement with narrated
explanations, grammatical rules, and lexical meanings, while in others there is a
partial or even total disregard for narrated explanations, grammatical rules, and
word meanings. Tafseers of the first type are acceptable, while those based mostly
or solely on unfounded opinion are considered heretical or bordering on heresy.
Allaah and His Prophet (r) have expressly forbidden unfounded explanations of
the Qur’aan. For example, it was forbidden in the verse,
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 36
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
ِﺎﺀﻠﹶﻤﺽِ ﺍﻟﹾﻌ ﻗﹶﺒﻊ ﻤﻡ ﻤِﻨﹾﻬﻪﻨﹾﺘﹶﺯِﻋ ﻴﻟﹶﻜِﻥﺎ ﻭﺍﻋ ﺍﻨﹾﺘِﺯﻭﻩﻁﹶﺎﻜﹸﻤ ﺃَﻋ ﺃَﻥﺩﻌ ﺒ ﺍﻟﹾﻌِﻠﹾﻡﻨﹾﺯِﻉ ﹶﻻ ﻴ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪ) ﺇِﻥ
(. ﻀِﻠﱡﻭﻥﻴ ﻭﻀِﻠﱡﻭﻥ ﻓﹶﻴﺃْﻴِﻬِﻡ ﺒِﺭﻔﹾﺘﹸﻭﻥ ﻓﹶﻴﻥﺘﹶﻔﹾﺘﹶﻭﺴﺎلٌ ﻴﻬ ﺠﻘﹶﻰ ﻨﹶﺎﺱﺒ ﻓﹶﻴﺒِﻌِﻠﹾﻤِﻬِﻡ
“ Allaah won’t remove knowledge after giving it to you by removing it (from you).
Rather he will remove it from (later generations) by taking (the souls of) the
scholars along with their knowledge, until only ignorant people remain. They will
be asked for religious verdicts, so they will issue verdicts based on their opinions,
leading others astray and going astray themselves.” 112
Therefore, it could be generally said that narrations from the Prophet (r), the
sahaabah, and the taabi‘oon are superior to those based on opinion. But if the
narrations are not authentic, such tafseers may then be actually worse than some
of those based on opinion.
A brief description of some of the most famous tafseers and their authors
follows.
TAFSEER BIR-RIWAAYAH
111
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):36.
112
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 9, pp. 305-6, no. 410.
113
At-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 248-52.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 37
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
114
Published by Maktabah Ibn Taymeeyah, Cairo, 1992. There are other editions as well.
115
At-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 235-7.
116
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 238-45.
117
Ibid., vol. 1, pp. 215-34.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 38
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
editions of this massive work is the one containing the comments of Ahmad
Shaakir on the isnaads of the many narrations cited by the author. Unfortunately,
the authentication effort was cut short by Shakir’s death, having only completed
up to verse five of Soorah Maa’idah.118
118
Printed by Daar al-Ma‘aarif in Cairo.
119
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 245-8.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 39
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
120
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 252-7.
121
Abridged by Ar-Rafaa‘ee.
122
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 257-61.
123
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 261-4.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 40
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
10. Tafseer Ibn ‘Abbaas, Tanweer al-Miqbaas min Tafseer Ibn ‘Abbaas
This tafseer was compiled by Muhammad ibn Ya‘qoob al-Fayroozaabaadee
(d. 1414 CE/817 AH), who was a Shaafi‘ee scholar and author of the famous
Arabic dictionary, al-Qaamoos al-Muheet. The vast majority of this tafseer
consists of explanatory statements attributed to the great sahaabee and mufassir,
Ibn ‘Abbaas. The author mentions the chains of narrators for each section of
tafseer . Hence, this tafseer is considered as being among the tafseers bir-
riwaayah. However, chains of narration attributed to Ibn ‘Abbaas vary in their
level of authenticity, depending upon the reliability of the narrators themselves.
Chains from Mu‘aawiyah ibn Saalih and Qays ibn Muslim al-Koofee are
considered saheeh (highly authentic) and those from Ibn Is-haaq (the historian)
are considered hasan (authentic); while those from Ismaa‘eel ibn ‘Abdur-
Rahmaan as-Suddee al-Kabeer and ‘Abdul Maalik ibn Jurayj are doubtful. Those
from ad-Dahhaak ibn Mazaahim al-Hilaalee, ‘Ateeyah al-‘Awfee, Muqaatil ibn
Sulaymaan al-Azdee, and Muhammad ibn as-Saa’ib al-Kalabee, who was accused
of fabricating hadeeths, are all da‘eef (unacceptable). Nearly all of the so-called
“Tafseer of Ibn ‘Abbaas” is based on statements narrated in chains containing
Muhammad ibn as-Saa’ib al-Kalabee. Hence, this tafseer is considered unreliable
for the most part; and, despite its popularity among the masses, it is totally
rejected by Muslim scholars.125
TAFSEER BID-DIRAAYAH
124
Fat-h al-Qadeer , documentation by Sayyid Ibraaheem (Cairo: Daar al-Hadeeth, n.d.).
125
See Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 360-62 and at-Tafseer wa al Mufassiroon, pp. 81-3.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 41
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
126
See Shorter Encyclopaedia of Islam, p. 470.
127
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 298-304.
128
See al-Jaami‘ li Ahkaam al-Qur’aan, vol. 10, pp. 175-6.
129
See Shatharaat ath-Thahab, vol. 5, p. 335, and al-Jaami‘ li Ahkaam al-Qur’aan, vol. 1,
publisher’s preface.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 42
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
author who mentioned it. After presenting the text of a verse, he will state the
number of issues relating to it that he plans to discuss. He usually starts with an
explanation of the vocabulary of the verse, quoting a line or two of poetry to
illustrate the definition of any difficult words. He also mentions variant recitations
and their reciters. In discussing fiqh issues, he mentions the major opinions along
with their evidence, then evaluates them. He generally supports the Maalikee
position, although not always. He also refutes deviant sects like the Shee‘ah, the
Mu‘tazilah, and the Qadareeyah, but he does so with scholarly etiquette. His
tafseer is considered one of the monumental works in this field, and is
indispensable for the fiqh issues of the Qur’aan.130
130
See al-Jaami‘ li Ahkaam al-Qur’aan, vol.1, pp. 6-7, Author’s Introduction, and al Mabaahith
fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 391.
131
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 304-11.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 43
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
each chapter. In his discussions of the various recitations, he limits himself to the
authentic seven and attributes each to its reciter. An-Nasafee debated the various
legal issues connected with verses by explaining the arguments of each math-hab,
refuting them and supporting the positions of his own math-hab, the Hanafee
school. Discussions of grammatical issues are mostly very brief. On the whole,
the tafseer is medium-sized and its style is brief and clear.132
132
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 311-17.
133
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 318-24.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 44
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
settled in Egypt. This tafseer is in eight large volumes and is widely used by
scholars as an important reference work on grammatical constructions in the
Qur’aan. Aboo Hayyaan mentions in detail the differences among grammarians
and makes most of his tafseer from a grammatical point of view, so much so that
it bears a closer resemblance to a grammar book than it does to a tafseer of the
Qur’aan. However, he does develop the other areas of tafseer , such as fiqh issues,
recitations, Qur’aanic eloquence, and narrations from early orthodox scholars. In
numerous places, he also refutes many of az-Zamakhsharee’s philosophical
arguments, as well as his grammatical positions.134
6. Tafseer an-Naysaabooree, Gharaa’ib al-Qur’aan wa Raghaa’ib al-Furqaan
Nithaamud-Deen ibn al-Hasan an-Naysaabooree (d.1328 CE/728 AH),
nicknamed an-Nithaam al-A‘raj, was born in Qum, but grew up in Nishapur,
where he became a famous literary scholar, grammarian, and Qur’aan reciter.
An-Naysaabooree wrote his tafseer by critically condensing ar-Raazee’s tafseer ,
adding additional material from al-Kash-shaaf and other tafseers, as well as
tafseers of the sahaabah and taabi‘oon. The format used in his tafseer is quite
unique among tafseers. After mentioning the verse, he mentions the various
recitations, carefully attributing them to one of the ten major reciters. Then he
mentions the possible places where pauses may take place and explains the
resulting meanings of the verse. After that, he discusses the relationship between
verses and begins the tafseer by explaining the grammatical meaning of the
verses. He then mentions the fiqh issues and the opinions of the various
philosophical and theological arguments, firmly defending the orthodox position
of Ahl as-Sunnah. Verses concerning the wonders of creation are discussed from
the viewpoint of natural sciences. Due to the author’s strong Soofee leanings, he
delves into the spiritual implications and his personal enlightenment at the end of
each verse’s tafseer . This tafseer is presently printed in the margin of one edition
of Tafseer at-Tabaree and is widely read by scholars.135
7. Tafseer al-Jalaalayn
This tafseer is the product of two scholars, both of whom had the title,
“Jalaalud-Deen” (Glory of the Religion): Jalaal ad-Deen as-Suyootee (1445-1505
CE), author of ad-Durr al-Manthoor, and Jalaalud-Deen al-Mahallee (1389-1460
134
Ibid., vol. 1, pp. 325-9.
135
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 329-40.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 45
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
CE/791-864 AH). The former was discussed previously, so we will only concern
ourselves with the latter. His name was Muhammad ibn Ibraaheem al-Mahallee
and his birthplace was Egypt. He became a great scholar of the Shaafi‘ee math-
hab and refused the post of the chief judge, preferring to teach fiqh in the local
schools and engage in trade. He wrote a number of simple and concise books in
various fields which became very popular. He began his tafseer starting with
Soorah al-Kahf (18) and ending with Soorah an-Naas (114). He then did the
tafseer of the first soorah, al-Faatihah; however, he died before completing the
rest. As-Suyootee then began from Soorah al-Baqarah (2) and ended with Soorah
al-Israa’ (17), which is a little less than one half of the Qur’aan. He followed al-
Mahallee’s format. The basic meanings of the verses are explained and the most
probable opinions are mentioned. Grammatical explanations are only relied on
where absolutely necessary. Some reference is also made to the more famous
recitations. There are very few areas where the two authors differed. One of them
concerns the rooh (soul), which al-Mahallee explains in Soorah Saad (38) as a
subtle body or substance that brings man to life when it is blown into him. As-
Suyootee agrees with him in his own tafseer of Soorah al-Hijr (15), but in his
tafseer of verse 85 of Soorah al-Israa’:
z`ÏiB OçF•Ï?ré& !$tBur ’În1u‘ Ì•øBr& ô`ÏB ßyr”•9$# È@è% ( Çyr”•9$# Ç`tã š•tRqè=t«ó¡o„ur )
“And they ask you about the rooh. Say: ‘The rooh is by my Lord’s
command,’ for you have been only given a little amount of
knowledge,”136
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 46
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Numerous editions have been printed, and many commentaries have been written
on it, the most famous being Haasheyah al-Jamal and Haasheyah as-Saawee.137
137
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 341-5.
138
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 346-52.
139
In fact, he was probably the single most influential scholar in the history of the Ottoman
empire. See The Venture of Islaam, vol. 3, The Gunpowder Empires, pp. 110-11.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 47
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Very few Israa’eeleeyaat are mentioned and the various legal opinions on
legal issues are listed only occasionally. He sometimes mentions the various
grammatical meanings of verses and chooses the most appropriate after producing
proof to that effect. The tafseer has been reprinted in five medium-sized volumes
numerous times and is quite popular among scholars due to its clarity and
beauty.140
10. Tafseer al-Aaloosee, Rooh al-Ma‘aanee fee Tafseer al-Qur’aan al-Atheem
wa as-Sab‘ al-Mathaanee
As-Sayyid Mahmood Afandee al-Aaloosee141 (1802-1853 CE/1217-1269
AH) was among the greatest Shaafi‘ee scholars of ‘Iraaq. He was appointed
muftee of Baghdaad and was very familiar with the legal positions of the various
math-habs. In fact, he often followed the opinions of Aboo Haneefah on many
issues. The author has compiled in his tafseer the opinions and narrations of the
early scholars and the explanations of latter-day scholars with great care and
honesty. All statements are attributed to their authors, and their conflicting
opinions are weighed without any bias. Al-Aaloosee often times refutes the
unorthodox interpretations and heretical explanations of the Mu‘tazilees and the
Shee‘ah. He also mentions the scientific theories relating to the verses on creation
and criticizes those he considers inaccurate or unlikely. Grammatical and legal
issues are discussed at great length through the tafseer without bias. Al-Aaloosee
severely criticizes the Israa’eeleeyaat and even ridicules them occasionally. He
also mentions the variant recitations, but does not restrict himself to the authentic
ones. Many quotes from classical literature are used to support his grammatical
arguments, and he usually closes off his tafseer by mentioning the spiritual
implications.
Rooh al-Ma‘aanee is a virtual tafseer encyclopedia, in which most of what
has been written on tafseer has been gathered and critically presented. Despite the
author’s occasional overemphasis on technical areas not directly related to tafseer ,
his approach is always balanced and unbiased.142
Tafseers of the Mu‘tazilees
The Mu‘tazilee scholars interpreted the Qur’aan in such a way as to support
and defend their unique and unorthodox ideas which had never before been
expressed by the early scholars among the sahaabah, the taabi‘oon, or their
140
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 353-60.
141
Aaloos is the name of an island in the Euphrates River. His foreparents inhabited a village on
it.
142
See at -Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 360-70.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 48
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
students. Many of their early tafseers, like those of orthodox scholars, were lost in
time and we only know about them from references made to them by their
contemporaries. Their method of tafseer is considered tafseer bid-diraayah of the
worst kind. Such tafseers are noted for their total disregard for the opinions of the
early mufassirs, as well as their complete dismissal of classical lexical meanings.
The following are brief reviews of Mu‘tazilee-oriented tafseers which have
survived until today:
143
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 399-410
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 49
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
144
See at-Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 410-36.
145
See at -Tafseer wal-Mufassiroon, vol. 1, pp. 437-89.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 50
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
3
_________________________
T he Qur’aan, the final discourse between God and man, was revealed in the
language of the final Prophet (r), the language of the people among whom
he was raised and by whom the last message was destined to be carried to the
ends of the world. Allaah created man in a variety of colors and taught man
diverse languages. Allaah, Most Wise, sent each of His messengers speaking the
language of his people in order to facilitate the transmission of the divine
message. This was clearly stated in the verse:
Consequently, all prophets were raised up from among their own people, even
though they all carried the same basic message:
(#qç7Ï^tGô_$#ur ©!$# (#r߉ç6ôã$# Âcr& »wqß™§‘ 7p¨Bé& Èe@à2 ’Îû $uZ÷Wyèt/ ô‰s)s9ur )
( |Nqäó»©Ü9$#
“Verily, I have raised up in every nation a messenger saying:
‘Worship Allaah and avoid false gods.’ ”2
1
Soorah Ibraaheem (14):4.
2
Soorah an-Nahl (16):36.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
3
Soorah al-A‘raaf (7):158.
4
Soorah Saba’ (34):28.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
5
See The New Encyclopaedia Britannica , vol. 22, pp. 118-19.
6
See The Venture of Islam, vol. 3, The Gunpowder Empires and Modern Times, pp.120-1.
7
Collected by at-Tirmithee and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol.
3, p. 9, no. 2327. (See also Riyadh-us-Saliheen, vol. 2, p. 512, no. 999, for the English version.)
8
See The New Encyclopaedia Britannica , vol. 29, pp. 851-2 and vol. 7, p. 728. See also The
Venture of Islam, vol. 3, The Gunpowder Empires and Modern Times, pp. 265-6, 327-8.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
9
‘Ali, ‘Abdullah Yusuf, The Holy Qur’aan, p. xiv.
10
Arberry, A.J., Preface of The Koran Interpreted, p.7.
11
‘Ali, ‘Abdullah Yusuf, The Holy Qur’aan, p. xiv.
12
Preface of The Koran Interpreted, pp. 7, 10.
13
‘Ali, ‘Abdullah Yusuf, The Holy Qur’aan, p. xiv.
14
Ibid., p. xiv.
15
‘Ali, ‘Abdullah Yusuf, The Holy Qur’aan, p.xv.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
1917 by that of the Ahmadee scholar Maulvi Muhammad ‘Alee, which reflects
the ideas of the Ahmadeeyah psuedo-Islaamic sect. Due to the strong missionary
activity of the sect, their translation has, until recently, enjoyed a very wide
circulation in the West. In 1919, Mirza Hairat of Delhi also published a
translation, and Hafiz Ghulam Sarwar’s translation was published in 1929.
However, neither of these was ever widely read. 16
In 1930, the English scholar of Arabic, Muhammad Marmaduke Pickthall,
produced the first English translation by a Muslim convert. This scholar attempted
what he termed an “almost literal translation” and included very few explanatory
footnotes.17 Nevertheless, his translation has become the second most widely
received among Muslims.
Perhaps the most widely read English translation is that of ‘Abdullaah Yusuf
‘Ali, first published in Lahore in 1934. This is a rather free translation, in which
the author, who received an education in the English classics, attempted to make a
literary masterpiece capturing the beauty of the original. He provided summaries
and profuse footnotes which, in a number of instances, included very unorthodox,
if not heretical, opinions. A committee was formed in Saudi Arabia in 1980 to
produce a reliable English translation of the Qur’aan. They chose ‘Abdullaah
Yusuf ‘Ali’s as the best available, noting its “highly elegant style, a choice of
words close to the meaning of the original text, accompanied by scholarly notes
and commentaries.”18 They recognized, however, that it had serious flaws, so they
revised his translation here and there and made substantial revisions of his notes
to remove his most glaring errors. This revised edition was published by the King
Fahd Qur’aanic Printing Press in Madeenah in 1985.
Among the translations rejected by the Saudi review committee was that of
the Austrian Muslim convert, Muhammad Asad. Its publication had been earlier
considered but rejected by the Raabitah (Muslim World League) due to his
marked leaning toward Mu‘tazilee (Rationalist) views.19 Asad then went ahead
16
Ibid., p. xv.
17
Pickthall, Muhammad Marmaduke, The Meaning of the Glorious Koran, p. vii.
18
Preface of The Holy Qur’aan, English Translation of the Meanings and Commentary, p. vi.
19
He consistently explains away passages that mention miracles as being metaphorical, and he
uses a similar approach to explain the passages which contain descriptions of Allaah. It isn’t
surprising that he relies heavily on the opinions of Muhammad ‘Abduh. See The Message of the
Qur’an, Foreword, p. v, footnote 4.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
and published it on his own in 1980, and he reached an agreement with the
prominent orientalist publisher, E.J. Brill, to distribute it.20
Another Muslim convert, Professor T.B. Irving, dissatisfied with the archaic
language of both Pickthall and Yusuf ‘Ali, produced “an American version in
contemporary English,” published in 1992.21 It has a useful introduction about the
problems of translating the Qur’aan into contemporary English. Very brief
introductory notes for each chapter are gathered at the beginning of the book, but
there is no commentary.
Professor Muhammad Taqi-ud Din Al-Hilali and Dr. Muhammad Muhsin
Khan, both of the Islaamic University of Madeenah, published their Interpretation
of the Meanings of the Noble Qur'an in 1985. It is an attempt to summarize the
commentaries of at-Tabaree, al-Qurtubee and Ibn Katheer by inserting additional
material in parentheses into the translated text. Many Arabic terms, such as
faasiqoon, abraar, haneef, are transliterated, with explanations of their meanings
inserted after them in parentheses. Most of the footnotes consist of hadeeths from
Saheeh al-Bukhaaree relevant to the verses they annotate. There is much that is
useful in this work, but it is marred by repetitive insertions that disrupt sentence
flow, making it linguistically clumsy. Also, because commentary is inserted into
the flow of the sentences, readers unable to read Arabic may understand the added
commentary to be an integral part of the original text. For instance, verse 157 of
Soorah an-Nisaa’ refutes the claim that Jesus was crucified:
“They neither killed nor crucified him, but it was made to appear so to
them.”
However, as rendered in The Noble Qur’an, it reads: “[But they killed him not,
nor crucified him, but the resemblance of Jesus was put over another man
(and they killed that man)...”22
20
See The Message of the Qur’an, copyright information page.
21
See T.B. Irving, The Noble Qur’an, p. xxxvii.
22
M. Hilali and M. Khan, Interpretation of the Meanings of the Noble Qur’an, p. 157.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The orientalists have also been active during this century and have produced
other English translations; for example, R. Bell, Edinburgh, 1937-39; and A.J.
Arberry, London, 1964. However, these translations have been shunned by
Muslims now that sufficient Muslim works are available.
Types of Translation
The Qur’aan is more than the sum total of its words, grammatical
constructions, figures of speech, rhythms, and rhymes. It is a message, a direct
communication between God and man, and it is a permanent inimitable literary
miracle. Neither the Arabs of the past nor the present were able to meet the open
challenge concisely expressed in the verse:
`ÏiB ;ou‘qÝ¡Î/ (#qè?ù'sù $tRωö7tã 4’n?tã $uZø9¨“tR $£JÏiB 5=÷ƒu‘ ’Îû öNçFZà2 bÎ)ur )
( Ï&Î#÷VÏiB
“And if you all are in doubt about what I have revealed to My servant,
produce a single soorah like it.”23
23
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):23.
24
Soorah Yoonus (10):38.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
literally translated because Arabic words often have more than one literal
meaning, not to mention their figurative meanings. And, many Arabic
constructions contain subtle shades of meanings which cannot be expressed in
another language. No translation can be called or considered to be God’s word.
God’s word is the Arabic Qur’aan, as He Himself said,
Attempts to catch the charm of the Qur’aan in loose or free translations are also
presumptuous, misleading, and doomed to failure. “The inimitable symphony, the
very sounds of which move men to tears and ecstasy”26 exists only in the Arabic.
Any degree of success will only dupe readers into thinking that they are
experiencing the Qur’aan, whereas in reality, they are experiencing the feelings of
the translator and his literary skills. Even claims to translations of the Qur’aan’s
meanings are false because the author of such translations chooses meanings
which he feels are appropriate in the case of Arabic words which have more than
one meaning and words which have no non-Arabic equivalent. He also chooses
between literal and figurative meanings and translates the one which he considers
appropriate. All translations are in fact tafseers, some more accurate than others.
Most translations list in their forewords the names of the classical tafseers and
lexicons on which they relied. This may seem to be a very fine point, but if it
were put in another way perhaps the difference would be more obvious. The
mufassir speaks in an explanatory way as if to say: “This is what I understand
from the verse.” The translator speaks as if he has completely understood the
verse’s meaning and translated it as if to say: “This is what the verse means.” The
difference between the two approaches is quite vast. Hence, translators should
emphasize in their prefaces and titles the fact that this is their personal
understanding of the Qur’aan. Perhaps the best approach for a translator would be
to simply translate the basic text of the classical tafseers using footnotes to
explain other possible meanings and the context of the passages where necessary.
This is not to say that existing “translations” are of no value whatsoever and that
those who do not understand the Arabic should stop reading them. Existing
25
Soorah Yoosuf (12):2.
26
Pickthall, The Meaning of the Glorious Koran, p. vii.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“translations” serve to convey the basic message of the Qur’aan to those who
cannot get it from the Qur’aan themselves. However, the reader should bear in
mind that what he or she is reading is not a translation of the Qur’aan or all of its
meaning, but only an explanation in another language. Learning Arabic to
whatever degree possible should be among the goals of all Muslims in order that
they may hear Allaah’s words exactly as they were revealed.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
4
________________________
The name Qur’aan is used to refer to both the Qur’aan as a whole, as in the
previously quoted verse; as well as to each verse or group of verses, as in the
following verse:
27
Arabic-English Lexicon, vol. 2, p. 2502.
28
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):9.
29
Soorah al-A‘raaf (7):204.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The Book has also been referred to by other names; for example, the Furqaan
(The Distinction):
( ÇÊÈ #·•ƒÉ‹tR
The Qur’aan could be defined as Allaah’s words which were revealed in Arabic in
a rhythmical form to Prophet Muhammad (r). Its recitation is used in acts of
worship and its smallest chapter (soorah) is of a miraculous nature.
The Prophet’s divinely inspired statements which were recorded by his
followers are generally referred to as hadeeths. For example, the Prophet’s
companion (sahaabee), ‘Umar ibn al-Khattaab, reported that he once said,
30
Soorah al-Furqaan (25):1
31
Soorah al-Hijr (15):9.
32
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, p. 1, no. 1) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim,
vol. 3, p. 1056, no. 4692).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
However, in some of his statements, the Prophet (r) attributed what he said to
Allaah; for example, another sahaabee, Aboo Hurayrah, reported that the Prophet
(r) said,
ِﻨِﻲ ﻓِﻲ ﻨﹶﻔﹾﺴِﻪ ﺫﹶﻜﹶﺭﻨِﻲ ﻓﹶﺈِﻥ ﺇِﺫﹶﺍ ﺫﹶﻜﹶﺭﻪﻌﺃَﻨﹶﺎ ﻤﺩِﻱ ﺒِﻲ ﻭﺒ ﻋ ﻅﹶﻥ ﺃَﻨﹶﺎ ﻋِﻨﹾﺩ: ﺎﻟﹶﻰ ﺘﹶﻌﻘﹸﻭلُ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪ) ﻴ
(. ﻡﺭٍ ﻤِﻨﹾﻬﻼﹶ ﺨﹶﻴ ﻓِﻲ ﻤﺘﹸﻪﻼﹶ ﺫﹶﻜﹶﺭﻨِﻲ ﻓِﻲ ﻤ ﺫﹶﻜﹶﺭﺇِﻥ ﻓِﻲ ﻨﹶﻔﹾﺴِﻲ ﻭﺘﹸﻪﺫﹶﻜﹶﺭ
“ Allaah, Most High, says, ‘I am as My slave thinks of Me and I am with him when
he remembers me. So if he remembers Me to himself, I will remember him to
Myself and if he remembers Me in a group, I will remember him in a better
group.’ ” 33
In order to distinguish this type of hadeeth from the previous type, it is referred
to as hadeeth qudsee (sacred hadeeth) and the former referred to as hadeeth
nabawee (prophetic hadeeth).
The Qur’aan, however, is not the same as hadeeth qudsee for a number of
reasons. First, the Qur’aan is from Allaah both in its wording and in its meaning,
while in the case of hadeeth qudsee, its meaning is from Allaah but its wording
was the Prophet’s (r). Second, Allaah challenged the Arabs and mankind in
general to produce even a chapter equivalent to one of the Qur’aan’s chapters, and
their inability to do so proves its miraculous nature. This is not so in the case of
hadeeth qudsee. Third, the recitation of the Qur’aan is used in salaah and is itself
considered a form of worship. The Prophet (r) said,
ﻑﹲﺭﺎ ﻻﹶ ﺃَﻗﹸﻭلُ ﺍﻟﻡ ﺤﺜﹶﺎﻟِﻬﺸﹾﺭِ ﺃَﻤﻨﹶﺔﹸ ﺒِﻌﺴﺍﻟﹾﺤﻨﹶﺔﹲ ﻭﺴ ﺒِﻪِ ﺤ ﻜِﺘﹶﺎﺏِ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪِ ﻓﹶﻠﹶﻪﻓﹰﺎ ﻤِﻥﺭ َﺃ ﺤ ﻗﹶﺭﻥ) ﻤ
(. ﻑﹲﺭ ﺤﻤِﻴﻡﻑﹲ ﻭﺭ ﺤﻻﹶﻡﻑﹲ ﻭﺭ ﺃَﻟِﻑﹲ ﺤﻟﹶﻜِﻥﻭ
“ Whoever reads a letter from the book of Allaah, the Most High, will get a good
deed (recorded for him), and each good deed is worth ten times its value. I am not
only saying that Alif Laam Meem is a letter, but I am also saying that Alif is a
letter, Laam is a letter, and Meem is a letter.” 34
33
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 9, pp. 369-70, no. 502) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 4, p. 1408, no. 6471).
34
Reported by Ibn Mas‘ood and collected by at-Tirmithee and Ahmad. See footnote 154, p.75.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
In the preface of one of the best orientalist translations of the Qur’aan, the
translator, Arthur John Arberry, writes: “There is a repertory of familiar themes
running through the whole Koran; each Sura36 elaborates or adumbrates37 one or
more—often many—of these. Using the language of music, each Sura is a
rhapsody composed of whole or fragmentary leitmotivs;38 the analogy is
reinforced by the subtly varied rhythmical flow of the discourse.”39
The following four principles should be kept in mind by the new reader of the
Qur’aan if he or she is to avoid unnecessary confusion and disorientation:
36
Qur’aanic chapter.
37
Indicate faintly or in outline.
38
Recurring features.
39
The Koran Interpreted, p. 28.
40
These four statements are quoted from Abu’l A‘la Maududi in The Meaning of the Qur’aan, vol.
1, p. 7.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Thus, the miracles which they brought were particularly suited to the areas of
knowledge in which their people excelled in order for the miracles to have the
maximum effect on them. For example, Prophet Moosaa (Moses), may Allaah’s
peace be on him, was raised up among the Egyptians, who were noted for their
mastery of the occult arts, sorcery, and magic. Hence, Allaah gave him the
miracle of being able to place his hand in his cloak and extract a brilliantly
shining hand. And when sorcerers and magicians were gathered to challenge
Prophet Moosaa, and the staffs which they had cast appeared to the audience as
snakes, Allaah turned Prophet Moosaa’s staff into a huge, real snake that
devoured the “snakes” of his opponents. That defeat was sufficient proof for the
magicians and sorcerers, who knew that no one could change the nature of a stick
as Moosaa apparently had done. They fell on their faces in submission and sincere
belief in the God of Moosaa, in spite of the threats on their lives uttered by their
master, the Pharaoh.
Another example is that of Prophet ‘Eesaa (Jesus), who was chosen by Allaah
from among the Jews. The Jews were especially noted for their exceptional
abilities in the field of medicine. Jewish doctors were highly respected and
revered for their seemingly magical ability to mend bones, heal wounds, and cure
the sick. Thus, Allaah favored Prophet ‘Eesaa with the miraculous ability to make
the blind see, the lame walk, and to bring the dead back to life. These abilities
were clearly beyond those of the Jewish doctors of that day, and they knew well
that no regular man could do them. Yet, Allaah gave Prophet ‘Eesaa an even
more dazzling miracle: he was able to mold birds out of clay, breathe on them,
and they would fly away.
Since the Prophet Muhammad (r) was to be the last of the prophets sent not
only to a particular people, but to all of mankind, he was given a miracle which
not only amazed people among whom he was raised, but which would challenge
and amaze the human mind until the last days of this world. Prophet Muhammad
(r), like the other prophets before him, was given a number of other miracles
whose effects were basically limited to the people of his time; for example, the
splitting of the moon upon his tribe’s request for a sign, the outpouring of water
from his hands on one occasion when he and his companions were short of water,
and the phenomenon of pebbles and rocks giving salaams to him (i.e., greeting
him with the phrase: “ as-salaamu ‘alaykum,” meaning, “peace be on you”), just
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
to mention a few.41 However, the miracle of Prophet Muhammad (r) which was
consistent with Allaah’s aid to the prophets before him was a literary miracle.
The Arabs had very little in the way of unique skills or accumulated
knowledge, but they took great pride in their oratory and literary skills. Yearly
contests were held in fairs like that of ‘Ukkaath, in which many lines of speeches
and poetry were recited from memory. Their language had reached its peak of
development, and eloquence was considered the highest quality a man could
possess. In fact, the ten most famous poems were so revered that they were etched
in gold and hung in the Ka‘bah for solemn adoration.42 Consequently, Allaah
revealed to His last prophet a book, beginning some parts with unintelligible
letters like, “Alif Laam Meem” or “ Qaaf” or “ Noon,” tantalizing the Arab mind,
as if to say, “From these letters which you combine to form your daily
conversations, as well as great works of prose and poetry, is formed a book whose
shortest chapter does not exceed three lines, yet you cannot imitate it, no matter
how hard you try!” Thus, his standing miracle was none other then the Qur’aan
itself, as the Prophet (r) himself stated,
ﺎﻴﺤ ﺍﻟﱠﺫِﻱ ﺃُﻭﺘِﻴﺕﹸ ﻭﺎ ﻜﹶﺎﻥﺇِﻨﱠﻤ ﻭﺸﹶﺭﻪِ ﺍﻟﹾﺒﻠﹶﻴ ﻋﻥ ﺁﻤﺎ ﻤِﺜﹾﻠﻪ ﻤﻁِﻲ ﺇِﻻﱠ ﺃُﻋﺎﺀِ ﻨﹶﺒِﻲ ﺍﻟﹾﺄَﻨﹾﺒِﻴﺎ ﻤِﻥ) ﻤ
(. ِﺔﺎﻤ ﺍﻟﹾﻘِﻴﻡﻭﺎ ﻴ ﺘﹶﺎﺒِﻌﻡﻫ ﺃَﻜﹾﺜﹶﺭ ﺃَﻜﹸﻭﻥﻭ ﺃَﻥﺠ ﻓﹶﺄَﺭ ﺇِﻟﹶﻲ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪﺎﻩﺤﺃَﻭ
“All prophets were given something which would cause people to believe in them.
The thing which I was given is none other than a revelation (the Qur’aan) which
Allaah revealed to me. So I hope that I will have the most followers among them
on the Day of Judgment.” 43
The Challenge
The Qur’aan is not only unique in the way in which it presents it subject
matter, but it is also unique in that it is a miracle itself. By the term “miracle,” we
mean the performance of a supernatural or extraordinary event which cannot be
duplicated by humans. It has been documented that Prophet Muhammad (r)
41
See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 5, p. 336, no. 473; vol. 6, p. 365, no. 387; and Sahih Muslim, vol. 4,
p. 1230, no. 5654.
42
See The Concise Encyclopaedia of Islam, pp. 277-8.
43
Reported by Aboo Hurayrah and collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 474,
no. 504) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 90-1, no. 283).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
#x‹»yd È@÷VÏJÎ/ (#qè?ù'tƒ br& #’n?tã •`Éfø9$#ur ߧRM}$# ÏMyèyJtGô_$# ÈûÈõ©9 @è% )
“Say: ‘If all mankind and the jinn would come together to produce the
like of this Qur’aan, they could not produce its like even though they
exerted all their strength in aiding one another.’ ”44
2. Ten Soorahs:
Next, Allaah made the challenge ostensibly easier by asking those who denied its
divine origin to imitate even ten soorahs of the Qur’aan:
( ÇÊÌÈ tûüÏ%ω»|¹ óOçFZä. bÎ) «!$# Èbrߊ `ÏiB OçF÷èsÜtGó™$# Ç`tB (#qãã÷Š$#ur
“Or do they say that he has invented it? Say (to them), ‘Bring ten
invented soorahs like it, and call (for help) on whomever you can
beside Allaah, if you are truthful.’ ”45
44
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):88.
45
Soorah Hood (11):13.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
This final challenge was to produce even a single soorah to match what is in the
Qur’aan, whose shortest soorah, al-Kawthar, consists of only three verses:
`ÏiB ;ou‘qÝ¡Î/ (#qè?ù'sù $tRωö7tã 4’n?tã $uZø9¨“tR $£JÏiB 5=÷ƒu‘ ’Îû öNçFZà2 bÎ)ur )
( ÇËÌÈ tûüÏ%ω»|¹ öNçFZä. cÎ) «!$# Èbrߊ `ÏiB Nä.uä!#y‰ygä© (#qãã÷Š$#ur ¾Ï&Î#÷VÏiB
“And if you all are in doubt about what I have revealed to My servant,
bring a single soorah like it, and call your witnesses besides Allaah if
you are truthful.”46
These challenges were not just empty words with no one caring to prove
them wrong. Prophet Muhammad’s (r) call to monotheism, to the abolition of
idolatry in all its forms, and to the equality of slaves and their masters threatened
the whole socio-economic framework of Makkan society in general, and the
position of the ruling Qurayshee tribe from which the Prophet (r) came in
particular. Makkah, the trading center of Arabia, as well as its spiritual center,
desperately wanted to stop the spread of Islaam. Yet all that the Prophet’s
opponents had to do to crush the movement was to make up a single soorah like
any one of those which the Prophet (r) and his followers were reciting to the
people. A number of Qurayshee orators and poets tried to imitate the Qur’aan,
but they failed. They then resorted to offering him vast amounts of wealth, the
position of king over them, and the most noble and beautiful of their women in
exchange for his promise to stop inviting people to Islaam. He responded to them
by reciting the first thirteen verses of Soorah Fussilat, until they asked him to
stop.47 The Quraysh also resorted to torturing their slaves and relatives who had
embraced Islaam in a vain attempt to cause them to revert to paganism. Later
they organized an economic boycott against the Prophet (r), his followers and the
members of his clan, Banoo Haashim, in an attempt to starve them into
submission. But even this plan eventually failed. Finally, they plotted to kill him
46
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):23
47
Collected by al-Haakim, al-Bayhaqee, Aboo Ya‘laa and Ibn Hishaam, and declared hasan by
Ibraaheem al-‘Alee in Saheeh as-Seerah an-Nabaweeyah, p.64.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
in his home by sending armed young men from each of the clans of Quraysh in
order that the guilt of his murder be shared by all the clans, making revenge by
the Prophet’s clan impossible.
However, Allaah enabled the Prophet (r) and his followers to flee Makkah
and join a new band of converts who had arisen among the tribes of a city to the
north called Yathrib. Islaam spread rapidly through the clans of Yathrib, and
within a year Muslims became the city’s majority. Prophet Muhammad (r) was
then made the ruler, and the name of the city was changed to Madeenah. Over the
next eight years, the clans of Makkah and its neighboring lands mounted a series
of unsuccessful battle campaigns against the emerging Muslim state in Madeenah,
which ended with the Muslim invasion of Makkah itself.
All of this bloodshed could have been avoided if only the Quraysh and their
allies had been able to produce a mere three lines of poetry or flowing prose
similar to the shortest soorah of the Qur’aan. Hence, there can be no doubt about
the inimitability of the Qur’aan’s literary style, about the miracle of its rhyme and
the marvel of its rhythm.
It has been suggested that the inimitability of the Qur’aan is not necessarily
unique, for great English poets like Shakespeare, Chaucer, or great poets in any
language tend to have distinctly unique styles which set them apart from their
contemporaries. However, if, for example, some leading poet of today were to
make an in-depth study of Shakespeare’s writings and write a sonnet in
Shakespeare’s style in old ink and on old paper, then claim that he had discovered
a lost poem of Shakespeare’s, the literary world would probably accept this claim,
even after careful study. Thus, even the greatest of poets could be imitated, no
matter how unique his style was, just as the famous painters have been imitated.48
The Qur’aan, however, is way above this level, as attempts to forge chapters have
been made throughout the ages, yet none has withstood close scrutiny. And, as
was mentioned before, the incentive to imitate the Qur’aan was more intense
during the time of its revelation when literary skills were at their peak than at any
other time, yet there was no successful attempt.
48
In fact, some English scholars consider much of what has been attributed to Shakespeare to have
been written by his contemporary, Christopher Marlowe.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇËÑÈ $|‹Éót/ Å7•Bé& ôMtR%x. $tBur &äöqy™ r&t•øB$# Ï8qç/r& tb%x. $tB tbrã•»yd |M÷zé'¯»tƒ )
49
Soorah Yoosuf (12):50.
50
Moses and Pharaoah: The Hebrews in Egypt, p. 176.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“O sister of Aaron! Your father was not an evil man nor was your
mother a prostitute!”51
The critics argue that the author confused two historical figures: Mary, the mother
of Jesus, and Miriam, the sister of Aaron. The confusion here is really a result of
their ignorance about how the Arabs use their language. The Qur’aan refers to
Prophet Hood as the brother of ‘Aad:
“And mention the brother of ‘Aad when he warned his people among
the sand dunes.”52
The Arabs refer to tribes by the patriarch from whom they are descended. The
tribe of ‘Aad was descended from a man named ‘Aad. Hood was not literally that
man’s brother, nor was he literally the brother of every member of his tribe, but
this is an expression used by the Arabs to indicate association with a people. Mary
was a descendant of Aaron. That is why she is referred to as the sister of Aaron.
In a similar usage, the New Testament refers to Elizabeth, the mother of John the
Baptist as a daughter of Aaron.53
óOÎgÎ6n=yñ ω÷èt/ -ÆÏiB Nèdur ÇÚö‘F{$# ’oT÷Šr& þ’Îû ÇËÈ ãPr”•9$# ÏMt7Î=äñ )
51
Soorah Maryam (19):28.
52
Soorah al-Ahqaaf (46):21.
53
Luke 1:5.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The Romans have been defeated in the nearest land; and after their
defeat they will conquer, within a few years.”54
The Arabic word bid‘ is more precise than the English word “few.” Bid‘ is used
for a number between three and ten. The Persians dealt the Romans a crushing
defeat in the year 616 CE, taking away Greater Syria and Egypt from them and
eventually besieging them in their capital of Constantinople. In 622 CE, the
Byzantines won a decisive victory against the Persians at the battle of Issus,
which allowed them to regain all the lands they had lost.55
The Qur’aan also accurately predicted that the Muslims would be able to
enter Makkah peacefully in order to make
‘umrah, the Lesser Pilgrimage.56 The prediction came in the middle of a long
bitter war between the Muslims and the idol worshippers who ruled Makkah. It
also promised the Muslims that if they fulfilled the conditions of complete faith
and good deeds that Allaah would deputize them to rule the world and would
establish their religion and replace the fear they were currently living in with
security.57 That is precisely what happened.
54
Soorah ar-Room (30):2-4
55
See The Holy Qur-an: English Translation of the Meanings and Commentary, pp. 1202-3.
56
Soorah al-Fat-h (48):27.
57
Soorah an-Noor (24):55.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“uŽtIsù $YB%x.â‘ ¼ã&é#yèøgs† §NèO ¼çmuZ÷•t/ ß#Ïj9xsム§NèO $\/$ptxž ÓÅe÷“ム©!$# ¨br& t•s? óOs9r& )
.`ÏB $pkŽÏù 5A$t7Å_ `ÏB Ïä!$uK¡¡9$# z`ÏB ãAÍi”t\ãƒur ¾Ï&Î#»n=Åz ô`ÏB ßlã•øƒs† šXôŠtqø9$#
“Have you not seen how Allaah makes the clouds move gently, then
joins them together, then makes them a heap? And you see raindrops
issuing from their midst. He sends down hail from the sky from
mountains of hail therein, causing it to fall on whom he wills and
averting it from whom he wills.”60
Gulf News of Friday, May 30th, 1997 carried the following item:
58
Soorah ath-Thaariyaat (51):47.
59
The New Encyclopaedia Britannica , vol. 6, p. 114.
60
Soorah an-Noor (24):43.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
These examples are just the “tip of the iceberg.” There are other remarkably
accurate statements about oceanography, geology, cosmogony, physics, biology,
embryology, etymology, hydrology and other subjects.62
ÏmŠÏù (#r߉y`uqs9 «!$# ÎŽö•xî ωZÏã ô`ÏB tb%x. öqs9ur 4 tb#uäö•à)ø9$# tbrã•-/y‰tFtƒ Ÿxsùr& )
“Will they not consider the Qur’aan carefully? Had it been from
other than Allaah, they would have found many contradictions in it.”63
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Case One:
One critic writes: “Calling together or ripping apart? In the process of
creation, heaven and earth were first apart and are called to come together
[41:11], while 21:30 states they were originally one piece and then ripped apart.”
First let us look at the text of each verse. Verse 30 of Soorah al-Ambiyaa’
states:
( $yJßg»oYø)tFxÿsù
“Have not those who disbelieved known that the heavens and the earth
were joined together, then I split them apart?
$u‹ÏKø•$# ÇÚö‘F|Ï9ur $olm; tA$s)sù ×b%s{ߊ }‘Édur Ïä!$uK¡¡9$# ’n<Î) #“uqtGó™$# §NèO )
’Îû ;N#uq»yJy™ yìö7y™ £`ßg9ŸÒs)sù ÇÊÊÈ tûüÏèͬ!$sÛ $oY÷•s?r& !$tGs9$s% $\dö•x. ÷rr& %·æöqsÛ
“And64 He turned to the heaven, when it was smoke and said to it and
the earth: ‘Come, both of you willingly or unwillingly!’—to which
both responded, ‘We come in obedience.’ And He decreed that they
64
The Arabic word is thumma. It is a conjunction which generally indicates an order of events but
at other times is used for a more abstract ordering. Muhammad Asad understood it not to be
ordinal here, so he translated it as ‘and.’ See Diyaa’ as-Saalik ilaa Awdah al-Masaalik for an
explanation of the meanings and usage of thumma. See the Qur’aan, 2:198-9 and 6:154 for other
examples of its nonordinal usage.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
become seven heavens in two periods of time, and imparted unto each
heaven its function.”
65
See The New Encylopaedia Britannica , vol. 16, pp. 776-7. Of course, this scenario is highly
speculative, but there are some observable features of physical reality that support the broad
outlines of the theaory.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇÏÐÈ $\«ø‹x© à7tƒ óOs9ur ã@ö6s% `ÏB çm»oYø)n=yz $¯Rr& ß`»|¡RM}$# ã•à2õ‹tƒ Ÿwurr& )
“Doesn’t the human being remember that I created him before, when
he was nothing.”66
66
Soorah Maryam (19):67.
67
Soorah at-Toor (52):35.
68
Soorah al-Ambiyaa’ (21):30.
69
Soorah an-Noor (24):45.
70
Soorah al-Furqaan (25):54.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And, indeed, I have created the human being out of sounding clay,
out of dark, smooth mud transmuted.”71
( ÇËÈ @,n=tã ô`ÏB z`»|¡SM}$# t,n=y{ ÇÊÈ t,n=y{ “Ï%©!$# y7În/u‘ ÉOó™$$Î/ ù&t•ø%$# )
“Read in the name of your Lord who has created—created the human
being from a clinging thing.”74
71
Soorah al-Hijr (15):26. The term ‘salsaal’ used in this verse means ‘clay mixed with sand,
which, when dried makes a sound’ (i.e., when it is struck.). Arabic-English Lexicon, vol. 2 , p.
1711.
72
Soorah Hood (11):61.
73
Soorah Room (30):20.
74
Soorah al-‘Alaq (96:1-2). The word ‘‘alaq’ is more accurately translated as ‘a clinging thing’
rather than ‘a blood clot’ in this context.
75
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):37.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 30
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“He created the human being from a drop of fluid, then, behold, he
becomes an open opponent.”76
76
Soorah an-Nahl (16):4.
77
Soorah al-Insaan (76):2. There is a wonderful subtlety in this expression that puzzled early
commentators; the word nutfah is a singular noun, while amshaaj, the adjective that modifies it, is
a plural. Normally, the adjective must agree with the noun it modifies in number, gender and case.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 31
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
fluid of the woman. It was reported that the Prophet (r) was asked from what the
human being was created, and that he replied,
( ِﺃَﺓﺭ ﻨﹸﻁﹾﻔﹶﺔِ ﺍﻟﹾﻤﻤِﻥ ﻭ، ِلﺠ ﻨﹸﻁﹾﻔﹶﺔِ ﺍﻟﺭ ﻤِﻥ، ﺨﹾﻠﹶﻕﹸ ﻜﹸلﱟ ﻴ)ﻤِﻥ
“ He is created from both the nutfah of the man and the nutfah of the woman.” 78
After fertilization, the embryo implants itself in the uterine wall. It is at this stage
that it is called an ‘alaq in Arabic. 79 Therefore, there is no contradiction between
any of these verses, al-hamdulillaah.
The nutfah is a single entity after fertilization, but it’s chromosomes are half from the father and
half from the mother. “Therefore, from the scientific point of view, amshaaj is entirely accurate as
a plural adjective modifying the singular nutfah, which is really a multifaceted single entity.” The
Qur’an and Modern Science: Correlation Studies, pp. 27-9.
78
Musnad Ahmad, no. 4206. The isnaad has weakness in it due to the presence of al-Husayn ibn
al-Hasan al-Fazaaree, who was truthful but prone to mistakes. (See Taqreeb at-Tahtheeb, p. 166,
no. 1317.) This part of the hadeeth is supported by the hadeeth of ‘Abdullaah ibn Salaam reported
by al-Bukhaaree which mentions that if the fluid of the woman (maa’ al-mar’ah) supersedes the
fluid of the man, then the child will resemble the mother. (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 5, pp. 189-90,
no. 275.)
79
The Qur’an and Modern Science: Correlation Studies, p.31.
80
See Rashad Khalifa’s presentation of his theory in the article “Problem of 19,” Impact
International, 13-26 Nov., 1981, pp.14-15.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 32
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
correct interpretation of the Qur’aan and Islam, and the reason why 19 was chosen
is that 19 means “God is One,” which is the message of the Qur’aan. 81
Many Muslims at first received Khalifa’s theories with uncritical enthusiasm.
However, when more rigorous critics began checking his numbers, they found
numerous discrepancies and some outright fabrications in his data. His claims
were based on the number of times a given letter or word occurs in a given soorah
or group of soorahs. It was discovered that he would sometimes treat hamzahs
like alifs and sometimes he wouldn’t, depending on the totals he needed in a
given soorah to confirm his theory. Sometimes he counted letters that weren’t
there, sometimes he failed to count existing letters, sometimes he counted two
words as one, sometimes he added to the Qur’aanic text and sometimes he deleted
from it, all for the purpose of making the letter and word counts conform to his
theory. On top of that, his letter counts changed over time, depending on whether
he wanted to establish a pattern for a soorah by itself or as part of a group of
soorahs. When confronted with inconsistencies in his data, he began claiming that
certain verses had been inserted into the Qur’aan that did not belong there. After
this clear statement of disbelief he went on to claim knowledge of the exact date
of the Day of Judgment and eventually claimed prophethood for himself. He
attracted a group of followers in Tucson, Arizona, but his career was cut short
when he was stabbed to death by an unknown assailant in 1990.82
81
Quran: Visual Presentation of The Miracle, pp.70-73, 243.
Note: This calculation is based on the Abjad system of numerology in which the letters of the
Arabic alphabet are given numerical values, a system borrowed from the Jewish mystical system
known as Kabbalah.
82
See Mission to America , pp. 137-168. A detailed refutation of this theory can be found in my
book, The Quran’s Numerical Miracle: Hoax and Heresy.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 33
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
5
_________________________
Ì•yf¤±9$# z`ÏBur $Y?qã‹ç/ ÉA$t6Ågø:$# z`ÏB “ɋσªB$# Èbr& È@øtª[“$# ’n<Î) y7•/u‘ 4‘ym÷rr&ur )
“And your Lord inspired the bee by wahy (awhaa) to make its home in
the mountains, trees, and what (men) build.”2
The bee instinctually builds its hives in appropriate places and according to
particular patterns as a result of divine commands secretly written in the cells of
its minute brain.
1
See the definitions of Ibn Faaris and ar-Raaghib al-Isfahaanee quoted in Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom
al-Qur’aan, p. 43.
2
Soorah an-Nahl (16):68.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
2. Wahy is also used in the Qur’aan to mean natural human instincts that Allaah
has placed in humans. For example, Allaah uses it in reference to Prophet
Moosaa’s mother as follows:
The motherly instinct of suckling her child is a result of information which has
been communicated to the genes of every female in a way unknown to man.
( þ’ÎTt“øtrB Ÿwur ’Îû$sƒrB Ÿwur ÉdOuŠø9$# †Îû ÏmŠÉ)ø9r'sù Ïmø‹n=tã ÏMøÿÅz #sŒÎ*sù )
“Then, when you fear for him, cast him into the river (in a basket),
and don’t be afraid and don’t grieve.”
This is sometimes called intuition; a person gets a strong feeling that a certain
action is the right thing to do, even though there may not be any logical evidence
for it.
4. One must be careful, to distinguish between the sources of various inner voices,
however, because devils also have the ability to inspire suggestions in human
hearts. Occasionally, the Qur’aan refers to the whispering and prodding of the
devils as wahy. The following verse is a good example of this type of use:
3
Soorah al-Qasas (28):7.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And verily the devils inspire their allies by wahy (yoohoona) to argue
with you.”4
The wahy by which devilish thoughts are inserted into the human minds is also
referred to as whispering in the Qur’aan, due to its secretive nature and hidden
source. For the same reasons it has been called “ wahy.”
y]»n=rO šZ$¨Y9$# zNÏk=s3è? žwr& y7çGtƒ#uä tA$s% 4 Zptƒ#uä þ’Ík< @yèô_$# Éb>u‘ tA$s% )
öNÍköŽs9Î) #Óyr÷rr'sù É>#t•ósÏJø9$# z`ÏB ¾ÏmÏBöqs% 4’n?tã ylt•sƒmú ÇÊÉÈ $wƒÈqy™ 5A$uŠs9
“He said, ‘My Lord, appoint a sign for me.’ (The angel) said, ‘Your
sign will be that for a full three nights you will not speak to people.’
Then he went out from the prayer niche to his people and gestured
(awhaa) to them to praise (Allaah) in the morning and the evening.”5
That is, he urged them to worship Allaah more often and more fervently.
6. Allaah uses the term wahy to refer to the process by which He gives commands
to his angels, as is illustrated in the following example:
4
Soorah al-An‘aam (6):121.
5
Soorah Maryam (19):10-11.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( (#qãZtB#uä šúïÏ%©!$# (#qçGÎm;sWsù öNä3yètB ’ÎoTr& Ïps3Í´¯»n=yJø9$# ’n<Î) y7•/u‘ ÓÇrqムøŒÎ) )
“And when your Lord said to the angels, ‘Verily, I will put a khaleefah
on earth.’ ”7
ﻔﹶﺎﻠﹶﻰ ﺍﻟﺼﻠﹾﺴِﻠﹶﺔِ ﻋ ﺍﻟﺴﺭﻠﹶﺔﹰ ﻜﹶﺠﻠﹾﺼﺎﺀِ ﺼﻤﺎﺀِ ﻟِﻠﺴﻤلُ ﺍﻟﺴ ﺃَﻫﻤِﻊﻲِ ﺴﺤ ﺍﷲ ﺒِﺎﻟﹾﻭ) ﺇِﺫﹶﺍ ﺘﹶﻜﹶﻠﱠﻡ
ﻉﺭِﻴلُ ﻓﹸﺯ ﺠِﺒﻡﻫﺎﺀﺘﱠﻰ ﺇِﺫﹶﺍ ﺠ ﺤ، ُﺭِﻴلﻬِﻡ ﺠِﺒﺄْﺘِﻴﺘﱠﻰ ﻴ ﺤ ﻜﹶﺫﹶﺍﻟِﻙﺍﻟﹸﻭﻥﺯﻼ ﻴ
ﻓﹶ ﹶ، ﻘﹸﻭﻥﻌﺼ ﻓﹶﻴ،
: ﻘﹸﻭﻟﹸﻭﻥ ﻓﹶﻴ، ﻕﱠ ﺍﻟﹾﺤ: ُﻘﹸﻭل ؟ ﻓﹶﻴﻙﺒﺎ ﺫﹶﺍ ﻗﹶﺎ َل ﺭ ﻤ: ُﺭِﻴلﺎ ﺠِﺒ ﻴ: ﻘﹸﻭﻟﹸﻭﻥ ﻓﹶﻴ، ﻗﹸﻠﹸﻭﺒِﻬِﻡﻥﻋ
(. ﻕﱠﻕﱠ ﺍﻟﹾﺤﺍﻟﹾﺤ
“ When Allaah, the Most High, speaks the revelation (wahy), the inhabitants of
heaven hear the heavens tremble with a sound like the rattling of a chain across a
smooth stone. They are stunned and faint, and they remain in that state until
Jibreel comes to them. When Jibreel comes to them, the fear is removed from their
hearts. They say, ‘O Jibreel! What did your Lord say?’ He says, ‘The truth.’ Then
they say, ‘The truth, the truth.’ ” 8
6
Soorah al-Anfaal (8):12.
7
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):30.
8
Reported by Ibn Mas‘ood and collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 3, p. 1326,
no. 4720), Ibn Khuzaymah and al-Bayhaqee, and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Silsilah al-
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Hence, it has been concluded that Allaah’s commands to the angels are
transmitted by Allaah speaking directly to them. From the above it is clear that
wahy is used to mean not only the process of revelation, but also the revelation
itself.
( ÇÍÈ 4ÓyrqムÖÓórur žwÎ) uqèd ÷bÎ) ÇÌÈ #“uqolù;$# Ç`tã ß,ÏÜZtƒ $tBur )
“And he [the Prophet (r)] does not speak from his own desires; verily,
it (his speech) is revelation (wahy) which was revealed (yoohaa).”9
Allaah’s word may be revealed to the prophets in two ways: directly, in the
form of true dreams or in the form of direct conversations; and indirectly, by way
of the angel of revelation, Jibreel. These ways were identified by Allaah in the
Qur’aan as follows:
÷rr& A>$pgÉo Ç›!#u‘ur `ÏB ÷rr& $·‹ômur žwÎ) ª!$# çmyJÏk=s3ムbr& AŽ|³u;Ï9 tb%x. $tBur )
( ÇÎÊÈ ÒOŠÅ6ym ;’Í?tã ¼çm¯RÎ) 4 âä!$t±o„ $tB ¾ÏmÏRøŒÎ*Î/ zÓÇrqã‹sù Zwqß™u‘ Ÿ@Å™ö•ãƒ
Ahaadeth as-Saheehah, vol. 3, pp. 282-3, no. 1293. A similar hadeeth was reported by an-
Nawwaas ibn Sam‘aan and collected by at-Tabaraanee.
9
Soorah an-Najm (53):3-4.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Direct Revelations
A portion of Allaah’s revelation was communicated directly to the prophets
without any intermediary. This form of revelation came either as visions during a
prophet’s sleep, or in the form of words spoken by Allaah from behind a veil of
light.
(a) True Dreams: Divine commands were communicated to the prophets in their
sleep in the form of dreams that gave them accurate glimpses of future events.
‘Aa’ishah, said, “ Revelation to the Prophet (r) first began as righteous11 visions
in his sleep. Whenever he saw a vision, it would occur as surely as the break of
the day.” 12 This form of revelation was a very gentle means of preparing the
Prophet (r) for the tremendous burden of revelation in the waking state.
Sometimes visions directed the prophets to perform certain acts, as in the
case of Prophet Ibraaheem, who is recorded in the Qur’aan as saying to his son
Ismaa‘eel,
( 2”t•s? #sŒ$tB ö•ÝàR$$sù y7çtr2øŒr& þ’ÎoTr& ÏQ$uZyJø9$# ’Îû 3“u‘r& þ’ÎoTÎ) ¢Óo_ç6»tƒ )
10
Soorah ash-Shoora (42):51.
11
Some versions of the hadeeth use the word “true.”
12
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, pp. 2-4, no. 3) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim,
vol. 1, pp. 96-8, no. 301).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
z`ÏB ª!$# uä!$x© bÎ) þ’ÎT߉ÉftFy™ ( ã•tB÷sè? $tB ö@yèøù$# ÏMt/r'¯»tƒ tA$s% )
( ÇÊÉËÈ tûïÎŽÉ9»¢Á9$#
“O dear father, do as you are commanded. You will find me, Allaah
willing, among those who are patient.”13
Both Prophet Ibraaheem and his son knew that the vision was a divine command
which they had to fulfill.
The only soorah of the Qur’aan reported to have been revealed in a vision
was Soorah al-Kawthar. The sahaabee Anas ibn Maalik said, “ Once while
Allaah’s Messenger (r) was among us in the masjid, he dozed off, then raised his
head, smiling. I asked him, ‘What has amused you, O Messenger of Allaah (r)?’
He replied, ‘A soorah has just been revealed to me.’ Then he recited, ‘In the
name of Allaah, the Most Compassionate, the Most Merciful,
It should be noted that true dreams are not restricted to the prophets only. 15
However, true dreams of common people are not the same as the true dreams of
the prophets. Every dream of the prophets was a true dream; hence, their dreams
13
Soorah as-Saafaat (37):102.
14
Collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 220, no. 790).
15
As is evident from the following statement of the Prophet: “ After me divine revelation (wahy)
will completely cease...except in the case of glad tidings...good dreams.” Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol.
9, p. 98, no. 119.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
are a reliable source of guidance. On the other hand, ordinary persons only know
that their dreams are true if and when they come true. The ordinary person’s
dreams are mostly a mixture of recollections, fantasies, and evil dreams implanted
by the devils, with occasional true dreams. Hence, one cannot claim any of one’s
dreams to be true before its occurrence.
(b) Divine Speech: The second method of direct communication by Allaah with
His prophets took the form of direct speech, in which the actual words of Allaah
were spoken to the prophets. In this case, the prophets were in a waking state, but
a veil of light separated them from Allaah and prevented them from seeing Him. 16
This form of communication only occurred with two prophets, as far as we know.
The first of those was Prophet Moosaa, about whom Allaah stated the following
in the Qur’aan:
“And when Moosaa came to Our appointed place and his Lord spoke
to him...”17
This method of communication was apparently the main way in which Prophet
Moosaa received revelation, hence his title “Kaleemullah” (the one to whom
Allaah spoke).18
The second prophet to listen to the direct speech of Allaah was Prophet
Muhammad (r). However, this pheno-menon occurred on only one occasion
during his prophethood; at the time of the Prophet’s ascension up into the heavens
(Mi‘raaj).19
16
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 113, nos. 341-2.
17
Soorah al-A‘raaf (7):143.
18
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 127, no. 377.
19
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 100-4, nos. 309 and 313.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Indirect Revelation
The vast majority of Allaah’s revelation was conveyed to the prophets by
way of the angel of revelation, Jibreel. The final book of revelation, the Qur’aan,
was revealed in this way for the most part. This form of revelation reached the
Prophet (r) in two ways: either in the form of the reverbrating sound like the
gong of a bell, or in the form of the direct speech of the angel.
In the first case, the angel remained in a spiritual state and the Prophet (r)
was required to raise spiritually to a suitable state in which to receive the
revelation. This method was extremely taxing on the Prophet (r). During it the
voice of the angel resembled the loud ringing of a giant bell. The sahaabee al-
Haarith ibn Hishaam once asked the Prophet (r) to describe how the revelation
came to him. The Prophet (r) replied,
ﺎ ﻤﻨﹾﻪﺕﹸ ﻋﻴﻋ ﻭﻗﹶﺩﻨﱢﻲ ﻭ ﻋﻡﻔﹾﺼ ﻓﹶﻴﻠﹶﻲ ﻋﻩ ﺃَﺸﹶﺩﻭﻫﺱِ ﻭﺭﻠﹶﺔِ ﺍﻟﹾﺠﻠﹾﺼﺄْﺘِﻴﻨِﻲ ﻤِﺜﹾ َل ﺼﺎﻨﹰﺎ ﻴﻴ)ﺃَﺤ
(. َﻗﹶﺎل
“ Sometimes it comes to me like the ringing of a bell—this is the most severe form
for me—then the ringing ceases and I have understood what (the angel) said.” 20
‘Aa’ishah described the intensity of this form as follows: “I have seen him when
revelation (wahy) descended upon him on an extremely cold day, yet when it
stopped his forehead would be dripping with sweat.”21
The second method was much easier for the Prophet (r) to bear than the first.
In this case, the angel would leave the spiritual world, appear to the Prophet (r)
in human form and pass on the revelation in the medium of human speech. The
Prophet (r) described this form to al-Haarith ibn Hishaam as follows:
20
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, p. 2, no. 2.
21
Ibid.
22
Ibid.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
TYPES OF WAHY
Just as the wahy was conveyed by different methods (direct and indirect) and
forms (visions and speech), there were variations in the types of revelation which
were conveyed: the Qur’aan, hadeeth qudsee, and hadeeths of the Prophet (r).
Wahy in the form of the Qur’aan is defined as Allaah’s word revealed to
Prophet Muhammad (r) in Arabic, whose style and construction is miraculously
inimitable and whose recitation is a form of worship.23 On the other hand, wahy in
the form of hadeeth qudsee is defined simply as Allaah’s word revealed in Arabic
to Prophet Muhammad (r). Such hadeeths are those in which the Prophet (r)
attributes statements directly to Allaah, saying, for example, “ Allaah said...” or
“ Your Lord said....” or the sahabee says, “The Prophet (r) reported from his
Lord...”24
As for the hadeeths of the Prophet (r), they can be divided into two main
categories. The first consists of statements of the Prophet (r) based on his own
reasoning (ijtihaad). Such statements are not considered to be wahy. However,
even this category is indirectly connected with wahy, because his statements were
either corrected by revelation if incorrect, or approved by the absence of
revelation if correct.25 The second category is prophetic statements whose
meanings were revealed (wahy), but whose expressions were in the Prophet’s own
words. This is the only part of the hadeeths of the Prophet (r) that can rightly be
considered wahy.
Attempts to create doubts about the authenticity of the Qur’aan have been
made from the time of the Prophet (r) until today. Hence, a study of wahy would
be incomplete without a look at the doubts which have been raised, as well as the
replies which have been given to them.
23
See Sharh al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 2, pp. 7-8.
24
Qawaa’id at-Tahdeeth min Funoon Mustalih al-Hadeeth, p. 65.
25
See Sharh al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 4, pp. 473-80.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The following objections to the divine origin of the Qur’aan are the two most
commonly raised:
(1) The Qur’aan was the product of Muhammad’s intelligence. (2) Muhammad
(r) was taught the stories of the Qur’aan by someone else.
Some critics claim that the meanings of the Qur’aan were made up by the
Prophet (r), and its unique style devised by him. If such a claim were true, it
would mean that the Prophet’s claim that the Qur’aan was revealed was false.
That is, the Prophet (r) either knowingly or unknowingly deceived his followers.
The kinder critics claim that the Prophet (r) was well-intentioned, as his
biography has proven him to be, but the “revelations” were really delusions and
hallucinations which afflicted him from time to time. This claim is totally
unsubstantiated historically, and the clarity and coherence of the Qur’aan could
not have been the result of a madman’s ramblings. The less kind critics claim that
the Prophet (r) deceived his followers in order to firmly establish his leadership
over them and eventually over the whole of Arabia. However, if the Prophet’s
goal had been personal glory and leadership, it would have been more to his
advantage to claim the Qur’aan for himself, since his enemies among the pagan
Makkans had all conceded its superiority over all other literary works and had
offered the Prophet (r) the position of kingship over Makkah if he would only
stop preaching the unity of God.
Other critics of the Qur’aan’s divine origins claim that the Prophet (r)
attributed it to Allaah in order to give more weight to his words in the minds of
people and increase their obedience to him. But if that were the case, he would
not have bothered to attribute any of his statements to himself. In fact, his
attribution of statements to himself has not in any way affected the obligation of
his followers to obey him.
Criticisms such as those previously mentioned would put the Prophet (r)
among worldly leaders who deceive their followers in order to achieve power,
prestige, and the luxuries of this life. However, the Prophet’s biography, which
has been recorded in the minutest of details, proves the exact opposite. Instead of
deception and corruption, we find the Prophet (r) known for his truthfulness and
generosity, so much so that he was named “ al-Ameen” (the Trustworthy). He
lived very simply, and we find that he died without leaving any wealth or debts
behind him.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
It should also be noted that there are many instances in the Qur’aan where the
Prophet’s mistakes were openly corrected. For example, when the Prophet (r)
accepted ransom for the prisoners of Badr,26 the following verse was revealed:
’Îû šÆÏ‚÷Wム4Ó®Lym 3“uŽó r& ÿ¼ã&s! tbqä3tƒ br& @cÓÉ<oYÏ9 šc%x. $tB )
!$yJ‹Ïù öNä3¡¡yJs9 t,t7y™ «!$# z`ÏiB Ò=»tGÏ. Ÿwöq©9 ÇÏÐÈ ÒOŠÅ3ym ͕tã
“It is not fitting for a prophet to take prisoners until he has established
himself in the land (by overcoming the enemy in war). You all desire
the fleeting gains of this world while Allaah wishes (for you the fruit
of) the next world. And Allaah is Powerful and Wise. Had it not been
for a previous decree by Allaah, you all would have been struck with a
severe punishment.”27
Another example is when the Prophet (r) brushed aside ‘Abdullaah ibn Umm
Maktoom, who had asked that he be taught the Qur’aan. The Prophet (r) had
been earnestly engaged with a group of Qurayshee leaders whom he was calling
to Islaam. Allaah revealed the following verses:
26
The first major battle fought against the people of Makkah. It occurred one year after the
migration to Madeenah.
27
Soorah al-Anfaal (8):67-68.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
#’ª1¨“tƒ ¼ã&©#yès9 y7ƒÍ‘ô‰ãƒ $tBur ÇËÈ 4‘yJôãF{$# çnuä!%y` br& ÇÊÈ #’¯<uqs?ur }§t6tã )
¼çms9 |MRr'sù ÇÎÈ 4Óo_øótFó™$# Ç`tB $¨Br& ÇÍÈ #“t•ø.Ïe%!$# çmyèxÿYtGsù ã•©.¤‹tƒ ÷rr& ÇÌÈ
“He frowned and turned away because the blind man came to him.
Yet for all you knew he might have grown in purity or been reminded
and benefited from the reminder. As for him who regards himself as
self-sufficient, you attend to him, though you are not to blame if he
does not become purified.”28
For the Prophet (r) to expose such minor errors which were imperceptible to
those around him was certainly not to his advantage if his goals were power and
prestige.
Other critics have claimed that the Prophet (r) learned the knowledge
contained in the Qur’aan from Christian or Jewish sources. There is a report,
about whose authenticity the scholars of hadeeth are divided, that the Prophet (r),
while still a boy, travelled to Syria with his uncle and guardian Aboo Taalib, and
on the way met a Christian monk, Buhayraa. 29 There is no dispute that after the
beginning of revelation, Prophet Muhammad (r) was introduced by his wife
Khadeejah to her cousin Waraqah ibn Nawfal, who was known to have
knowledge of the Torah and Gospels. The Prophet (r) is also known to have met
Jewish and Christian scholars after his migration from Makkah to Madeenah.30
However, his meeting with the monk was short, and all that transpired was the
monk’s prophecy to the Prophet’s uncle Aboo Taalib of his nephew’s impending
prophethood. As for Waraqah ibn Nawfal, he only confirmed that what was
revealed to the Prophet (r) came from the same source as the revelations of the
28
Soorah ‘Abasa (80):1-7.
29
Reported by at-Tirmithee. Ibn Katheer, ath-Thahabee and Ibn Seed an-Naas rejected the report,
whose narrators are not less than sadooq, due to certain historical inaccuracies in the text. Al-
Albaanee authenticated it in Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol. 3, p.191, no. 2862. See ar-Raheeq
al-Makhtum, p.60-1.
30
See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, pp. 2-4, no. 3, vol. 5, pp. 189-91, no. 275, and vol. 5, pp. 469-70,
no. 663.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
earlier prophets. There is no record of the Prophet (r) having studied with him,
and Waraqah died shortly after this incident. In Madeenah, the Christians and the
Jews used to debate with the Prophet (r) and ask him questions; many of the
Madeenan verses answered their questions. 31 They would ask him questions in
order to disprove his prophethood, and he would answer with the Qur’aan. There
is no historical record of anyone having taught the Prophet (r). Some, however,
claim that Haddaad, the Roman, was his teacher, but such a claim is quite
erroneous, because the Makkans did not consider Haddaad knowledgeable, nor
was he free to teach. He was known to be fully occupied as a blacksmith, and it
was known that he was a foreigner who could barely speak Arabic.32 The Arabs
of the Prophet’s time were very anxious to discredit the Qur’aan, but they were
unable to do so. If there had been a secret teacher, he would surely have been
exposed at that time.
Recently, most of the Qur’aanic stories that do not occur in the Torah or
Gospels, or which contradict them, have been traced to apocryphal33 books of the
Christians and Jews.34 This has been cited as proof that the Prophet (r) studied
the books of the Christians and the Jews. However, the number of obscure books
to which the Qur’aanic stories have been traced is great, and the languages of
these books vary between Amharic, Syriac, Hebrew and Greek.35 Consequently,
the Prophet (r), who could not read or write, would have had to spend most of his
time studying foreign languages, searching all over the Middle East for the books
and studying them in depth. Thus, even the most recent of critical research only
further confirms the divine origin of the Qur’aan.
31
See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 63-4, no. 79, and p. 207, no. 245.
32
See Tafseer Ibn Katheer, vol. 2, p. 208, the commentary on 16:103.
33
The Apocrypha are fourteen books of the Septuagint (a Greek translation of the Old Testament)
rejected in Protestantism and Judaism; eleven are in the Roman Catholic bible. Other ancient
Christian texts written by sects at odds with the Catholic church, such as those found at Nag
Hammadi, Egypt, have been discovered only in the last half century.
34
Introducing Islam, pp. 30-1.
35
See Concise Encyclopaedia of Islam, p. 229, and Encyclopaedia Britannica , vol. 22, p. 9.
Detailed charges can be found in Robert Morey’s book, Islamic Invasion, portions of which are
excerpted on the internet: http://members.aol.com/kingcome/cults/islam.htm. (A devastating
rebuttal of Morey’s Moon God theory, documenting his deceitful quotation of source material, has
been written by Shabbir Ali.)
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
6
_________________________
$¯RÎ) 4 >px.t•»t6•B 7's#ø‹s9 ’Îû çm»oYø9t“Rr& !$¯RÎ) ÇËÈ ÈûüÎ7ßJø9$# É=»tGÅ6ø9$#ur ÇÊÈ üNm )
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
These verses have to refer to the initial revelation because it is a known fact that
the whole Qur’aan was not revealed to Prophet Muhammad (r) on a single night
in Ramadaan.
Ibn ‘Abbaas stated that the Qur’aan was first separated from its station in the
upper heavens and placed in Bayt al-‘Izzah in the lowest heaven. 39 One version
states that this took place on the Night of Decree in Ramadaan. 40 Had it been
Allaah’s wish, the Qur’aan could then have been revealed as a whole to the
36
Soorah ad-Dukhaan (44):1-3.
37
Soorah al-Qadr (97):1.
38
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):185.
39
Collected by al-Haakim in al-Mustadrak, vol. 2, pp. 665-6, no. 4216. Although the statement
was not raised by Ibn ‘Abbaas to the Prophet (r), it relates to the unseen world and could not
have been made on the basis of reasoning. One of the narrators in the isnaad, al-A‘mash is
reliable, but he is a mudallis, which means his reports cannot be accepted, unless he explicitly
states that he heard the hadeeth from the person he attributed it to. He didn’t do that here, so the
isnaad is weak.
40
Collected by an-Nasaa’ee in as-Sunan al-Kubraa , vol. 5, p. 7, no. 7991, and by at-Tabaraanee in
al-Mu‘jam al-Kabeer. At-Tabaraanee’s isnaad includes a weak narrator. Nasaa’ee’s narrators are
all reliable, but one of them is al-A‘mash. In this version also, he didn’t explicitly state that he
heard the hadeeth from the person he attributed it to, so both isnaads are weak. However, an-
Nasaa’ee collected two supporting narrations with authentic isnaads in the same chapter. They
both mention the transferal of the Qur’aan to the lowest heaven during Laylatul-Qadr, but they
don’t mention Bayt al-‘Izzah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Prophet (r) in a single revelation. This was the method by which all of the earlier
books of revelation were sent down.41 But, Allaah chose to divide the revelation
into two parts. The first revelation within the heavens represented an
announcement to the inhabitants of the heavens that the final book of revelation
was being sent down upon the last of the prophets.
41
As-Suyootee says, “That the previous books were revealed all at once is well known from the
statements of the scholars, such that it may practically be called ijmaa‘. However, I have seen
some prominent contemporary scholars questioning this position, saying that there is no evidence
for it and that, in fact, they were revealed over a period of time like the Qur’aan. I say the correct
position is the first one. Among the evidences for that is the verse [32] from Soorah al-Furqaan
[“And those who disbelieve say, ‘Why is the Qur’aan not revealed to him all at once?’ (It is
revealed) thus so I may strengthen your heart by it, and I have arranged it in right order.”]
“Ibn Abee Haatim reports from Sa‘eed ibn Jubayr who quotes Ibn ‘Abbaas that the Jews
said, ‘O Muhammad, why wasn’t the Qur’aan revealed all at once, as the Torah was revealed to
Moosaa? Then the verse (from Soorah al-Furqaan) was revealed.” He reported by another isnaad
a similar report, except that the questioners were idolaters. He gathered similar reports on the
authority of Qataadah and as-Suddee.
“If you were to say that the Qur’aan is not explicit on this, and that even if these reports are
authentic, these statements were made by disbelievers, I would reply as follows:
“The fact that Allaah mentioned their objection without challenging the historical truth of their
claim, but instead explained the wisdom behind (gradual revelation), is an indicator that their
statement was factually correct. If the previous books had been revealed gradually, it would have
been sufficient to refute them by saying that it was Allaah’s standard practice for the books He
revealed to the previous prophets. That was how He responded to their objection, ‘What is it with
this messenger that he eats food and walks in the markets?’ (25:7) [‘We never sent
messengers before you who did not eat food and walk in the markets.’] (25:20).” Al-Itqaan
fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, vol. 1, p. 122.
42
Reported by ‘Aa’ishah and collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, pp. 2-4, no. 3)
and Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 96-8, no. 301).
43
Collected by al-Bayhaqee in Dalaa’il an-Nuboowah and al-Waahidee in Asbaab an-Nuzool. As-
Suyootee said its narrators were reliable but the isnaad is mursal. See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, pp.70-71.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
prophethood. The last soorah to be revealed was Soorah an-Nasr. 44 This soorah
was brought down in Minaa during the Farewell Hajj of the Prophet (r), which
took place at the end of the tenth year after the Hijrah. According to Ibn ‘Abbaas,
the last verse to be revealed was verse 281 in Soorah al-Baqarah, the last of a
series of verses dealing with interest.45 Allaah has referred to the second
revelation in the following way:
( ÇÊÉÏÈ WxƒÍ”\s? çm»oYø9¨“tRur ;]õ3ãB 4’n?tã Ĩ$¨Z9$# ’n?tã ¼çnr&t•ø)tGÏ9 çm»oYø%t•sù $ZR#uäö•è%ur )
“And (it is) a Qur’aan which I have divided into parts in order that
you (Muhammad) may recite it to the people gradually, and I have
revealed it by successive revelation.”46
There are a number of reasons why the second revelation took place in
segments rather than all at once, as happened with the former books of revelation.
The following are only a summary of the most obvious reasons:
44
That was Ibn ‘Abbaas’s opinion, as collected by Imaam Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 4, p. 1554,
nos. 7174-5). Other sahaabah had differing opinions. See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, pp. 77-81.
45
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 51, no. 67). This verse, “And guard
yourselves against a day when you will be brought back to Allaah; then every soul will be
paid in full what it earned, and they will not be wronged,” did not involve an addition to
Islaamic legislation, therefore there is no contradiction between this report and the statement of
Allaah in Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):3, revealed at the Farewell Hajj, “This day I have completed
your deen for you.”
46
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):106.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And those who disbelieve say, ‘Why is the Qur’aan not revealed to
him all at once?’ But it is like that in order that we may steady your
heart with it; and We have arranged its component parts in an
orderly, consistent manner.”47
Allaah would also give him confidence by reminding him of the trials of the
former prophets and how they were eventually given success. For example,
#Ó¨Lym (#rèŒré&ur (#qç/Éj‹ä. $tB 4’n?tã (#rçŽy9|Ásù y7Î=ö7s% `ÏiB ×@ߙ①ôMt/Éj‹ä. ô‰s)s9ur )
( Ÿ 4 $tRçŽóÇtR öNßg9s?r&
“Verily, the prophets before you were called liars, but they were
patient in spite of being accused of lies and in spite of the harm which
befell them until My aid came to them.”48
At other times Allaah would actually promise him help and victory:
47
Soorah al-Furqaan (25):32.
48
Soorah al-An‘aam (6):34.
49
Soorah al-Fat-h (48):3.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Tell those who disbelieve, ‘You will be defeated and gathered in Hell,
a terrible place of rest.’ ”50
Thus, certain segments of the Qur’aan were revealed at various point in his
mission specifically to comfort the Prophet (r) and give him steadfastness and
confidence in order to fulfill his obligation of propagating Islaam.
50
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):12.
51
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol.1, p. 2, no. 2).
52
Soorah al-Muzzammil (73):5.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
ô`ÏiB %YæÏd‰|ÁtF•B $Yèϱ»yz ¼çmtF÷ƒr&t•©9 9@t6y_ 4’n?tã tb#uäö•à)ø9$# #x‹»yd $uZø9t“Rr& öqs9 )
( «!$# ÏpuŠô±yz
Thus, the revelation of the final word of Allaah in one stroke would have been too
much for the Prophet (r) to bear. Such a revelation would have placed him under
the most extreme pressure. It was, therefore, broken down into bearable segments
and revealed gradually. In this way the Prophet (r) would only be burdened for
short periods of time and his mission would not be hampered by long periods of
recovery. Thus, the segmented method of revelation represents the gentle manner
in which Allaah dealt with His last messenger due to the might and glory of the
final message.
3. Gradation in Legislation
The method by which the Qur’aan was used to present the principles of Islaam
was a gradual method. All of the principles were not enjoined in the beginning or
all at once during any stage. The early soorahs of the Qur’aan were aimed at
treating the main problem which confronted the worship of Allaah and His unity:
shirk.54 Belief in Allaah’s supremacy and unity had to be built and the false gods
of creation had to be removed. Thus, the early soorahs concentrated on tawheed55
and the other major pillar of eemaan,56 belief in the Resurrection and Judgment. It
was not until after twelve years of building eemaan that salaah was made
compulsory, during the Prophet’s Ascent (mi‘raaj) to the heavens. 57 One year
before the Hijrah, the Qur’aanic verses began to stress salaah as a requirement for
53
Soorah al-Hashr (59):21.
54
The worship of other than Allaah.
55
Belief in Allaah’s unity and that He is the only true deity deserving of worship.
56
Faith.
57
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 100-3, no. 309. Ibn Hishaam mentions reports of the Prophet (r)
and his companions praying from the early days of the Makkan period although it was not yet
obligatory, and ash-Shaafi‘ee stated that in the early days prayer at night was obligatory, as is
indicated by the beginning of Soorah Muzammil, but that the final verse of the same soorah
abrogated the obligation. See Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 1, p. 554 and ar-Raheeq al-Makhtum, p. 78.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
the believers. It was not until two years after the Hijrah that the Qur’aanic verses
turned to sawm and zakaah and enjoined them on Muslims.58 Finally, in the sixth
year after the Hijrah, the verses of the Qur’aan revealed hajj as an obligation for
whoever is able to perform it.59
‘Aa’ishah mentioned that the first thing to be revealed of the Qur’aan dealt
with Heaven and Hell and that it was only after some time that issues of legal and
illegal acts were dealt with. She said, “If the first thing to be revealed had been,
‘Don’t drink liquor,’ or ‘Don’t commit adultery and fornication,’ they would have
said, ‘We will never give [it] up.’ ”60
If the Qur’aan had been revealed all at once, it would not have been possible
to establish the laws in a gradual fashion. This method was particularly important
for the first generation of Muslims who would later establish Islaam in the earth.
It was necessary for them to have a clear understanding of the principles of Islaam
because the later generations of Muslims would depend on their interpretation and
practice of Islaam.
58
Zakaah was mentioned in Makkan verses (e.g., 30:38-9, 27:1-3, 31:4, 41:6-7), but as the
Muslims were without a state, it was left to individuals to pay it, and there were no restrictions or
qualifications as to the amount of zakaah required on each category of wealth. See Fiqh az-
Zakaah, vol. 1, pp. 52-61. See also Zaad al-Ma‘aad, vol. 2, p. 30.
59
See Nayl al-Awtaar , vol. 4, pp. 337-8.
60
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 483-4, no. 515.
61
Collected by al-Bayhaqee in Shu‘ab al-Eemaan and quoted by as-Suyootee in al-Itqaan, vol. 1,
pp. 124-5. As-Suyootee notes, however, that it is authentically established that some passages
were revealed ten verses at one time, and on some occasions only a part of a verse would be
revealed.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
the scribes of the Prophet (r) to record all of the Qur’aan during his lifetime.
This early preservation of Qur’aan was critical to maintaining the purity of the
teachings of Islaam, as it was the alterations in earlier books of revelation which
led their followers astray. The gradual revelation of the Qur’aan also gave them a
greater opportunity to contemplate the meanings of the verses. This, in turn,
caused them to question the Prophet (r) in order to clarify certain points or verify
certain interpretations. Thus, this generation was able to gain a truly deep
understanding of the Qur’aan. This was of great importance, because their
practical implementation of the principles of the Qur’aan became a guide to later
generations of Muslims and continues to be one to this day. Such an
understanding would not have been possible had the Qur’aan been revealed all at
once.
( ÇÑÌÈ #·•ò2ÏŒ çm÷ZÏiB Nä3øŠn=tæ (#qè=ø?r'y™ ö@è% ( Èû÷ütRö•s)ø9$# “ÏŒ `tã š•tRqè=t«ó¡o„ur )
“And they ask you about Thul-Qarnayn. Tell them, ‘I will read to you
a report.’ ”62
At other times, verses would be revealed to correct an error made by the Prophet
(r) himself. An example of this is in Soorah at-Tawbah, in which Allaah told the
Prophet (r),
62
Soorah al-Kahf (18):83. See Tafseer Ibn Katheer , vol. 3, p. 106.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
šúïÏ%©!$# š•s9 tû¨üt6tGtƒ 4Ó®Lym óOßgs9 |MRÏŒr& zNÏ9 š•Ztã ª!$# $xÿtã )
“May Allaah pardon you.63 Why did you grant them permission to
stay at home before it became obvious to you who was speaking the
truth and you came to know who were the liars?”64
Mujaahid said the verse was revealed about some people who advised others,
“Ask the Messenger of Allaah (r) to excuse you (from participating in the
expedition to Tabook). If he gives you permission, stay home, and if he doesn’t
permit you, stay home, (anyway).” Ibn Katheer said “The Most High is saying,
‘You shouldn’t have given permission to any of them to stay behind so you could
have known who was truthful in his display of obedience to you and who was
lying. For they were firm in their intention to stay behind.’ ”65
Verses were also revealed to correct wrong attitudes which were widespread
among the Muslims of that time. An example of such a revelation is the case of
the Battle of Hunayn. Muslims had left to do battle with the disbelievers feeling
that they were sure to be victorious, since their numbers exceeded that of the
enemy many times over. The enemy ambushed them and caused them to turn on
their heels and flee in defeat. However, after that initial lesson, Allaah gave them
success over the enemy in the same battle. Then, He revealed the following
verse:
63
Muhammad Asad writes, “All the commentators agree...that this phrase, although expressed in
the form of an invocation, has the meaning of a statement—‘God pardons thee,’ or ‘has pardoned
thee.’ ” (The Message of the Qur’an, p. 266.)
64
Soorah at-Tawbah (9):43.
65
See Tafseer Ibn Katheer , vol. 2, p. 375.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇËÎÈ šúïÌ•Î/ô‰•B
“And on the day of Hunayn, when your large numbers pleased you,
they did not benefit you at all, and the earth became narrow in spite
of its vastness, then you turned around in retreat.”66
By dealing with the various incidents at the time that they occurred, the Qur’aan
was able to reach those involved more directly. Corrections made immediately
after errors take place tend to have a greater impact than general advice given
long before or after. If the Qur’aan had been revealed all at once, it would not
have been possible to treat these and similar problems within their context.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Its source had to be the Lord of the Worlds, Allaah, Most Great and Glorious.
Allaah Himself pointed to this fact in the Qur’aan, saying,
ÏmŠÏù (#r߉y`uqs9 «!$# ÎŽö•xî ωZÏã ô`ÏB tb%x. öqs9ur 4 tb#uäö•à)ø9$# tbrã•-/y‰tFtƒ Ÿxsùr& )
“Won’t they contemplate the Qur’aan? If it had come from other than
Allaah, they would have found in it many contradictions.”67
Whenever the Prophet (r) had a new revelation, he would tell his companions to
put it after other earlier revelations or before them. The Prophet (r) had no idea
what he was going to face in the future or how long he was going to live. His life
was filled with a multitude of incidents which, without a doubt, altered his mood
and his mode of expression. Yet, the Qur’aan in no way reflected these
differences. The Qur’aan is definitely not the product of Muhammad (r), as some
would like to claim, and that fact is proven by the Qur’aan itself.
EDUCATIONAL BENEFITS OF SEGMENTED REVELATION
The process of education depends on the following two basic principles: (a)
taking into account the mental level of the students, and (b) developing their
mental, spiritual and physical abilities with material which guides their thought
processes in the correct direction. Both of these important principles have been
carefully taken into consideration by the revelation of the Qur’aan in segments.
Gradation of legislation took into account the level of the Muslim community
during its various stages of development. The revelation of corrections and
answers at the time when they were most needed trained, developed and guided
the mental, spiritual and physical faculties in the right direction.
The question which naturally arises here is why the earlier books of
revelation were revealed as a whole. The answer to this question lies in the role of
the earlier books and the history of prophethood. The earlier books were sent for
short periods in human history and were directed to specific nations or tribes.
67
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):82.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
They contained principles which were not time or situation oriented and could be
revealed all at once, at the beginning of a mission or at any point during it. It
should also be noted that the earlier books were not in themselves miracles,
whereas in the case of the Last Prophet (r), it was the major miracle given to him,
for, as was mentioned earlier, the segmentation of the revelation combined with
the consistency of style was a proof of its divine origin. Also, the earlier prophets
were both preceded and followed by other prophets, so each prophet and his book
represented a segment of the overall revelation. Thus, the gradation in legislation
took place from prophet to prophet. Prophet Muhammad (r) was the last of the
prophets and his book of revelation contained the essential messages of all
previous books. Thus, his followers had to be properly prepared to carry the final
message to the world. As such, the gradation in legislation had to take place
within the message itself.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
7
_________________________
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 30
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Do not move your tongue to hastily (learn) it. Surely I will collect
and recite it. So, when I recite it, follow its recital.”68
It was very important that the Prophet (r) remember all that was revealed to him,
because he could neither read nor write.
The Prophet (r) passed on all of the Qur’aan to his companions before he
died. He used a number of different ways to make sure that they memorized and
recorded it exactly as he learned it.
1. The Prophet (r) used to recite aloud various parts of the Qur’aan in the
salaahs (congregational prayers). In that way, his followers used to hear
parts of the Qur’aan daily.69
2. Everyone who entered Islaam would be taught parts of the Qur’aan that
they would have to use in their daily prayers. Thus, Muslims were always
learning or teaching various parts of the Qur’aan.
3. The Prophet (r) informed his followers that the best of them were those
who learned and taught the Qur’aan. This encouraged them to make even
greater efforts to memorize the Qur’aan and teach it to others.
4. Those who were able to read and write were told by the Prophet (r) to
write down the various sections of the Qur’aan as they were revealed. The
Prophet (r) would tell them the order in which they should record the
verses. Al-Baraa’ ibn ‘Aazib stated that when the verse, “Those believers
who sit (at home) are not equal with those who strive,” was revealed,
the Prophet (r) said, “Call So-and-so.” He came with an inkpot and a
wooden board or a shoulder blade. The Prophet (r) said, “Write: ‘Those
believers who sit (at home) are not equal with those who strive in the
cause of Allaah...’ ”70
Because there was no paper in Arabia at that time, the Qur’aan was written down
on anything that was available. The companions wrote the verses of the Qur’aan
68
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):16-18.
69
Umm Hishaam bint Haarithah reported that she memorized Soorah Qaaf simply from hearing
the Prophet (r) recite it during the khutbah on Fridays. (Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, p. 412, nos. 1893-
4.)
70
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):95. The hadeeth was collected by al-Bukhaaree, Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6,
p. 95, no. 118.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 31
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
on date palm leaves, flat stones, tree bark, wood, dried animal skins, and even the
shoulder blades of sheep or camels. Thus, the verses of the Qur’aan were
preserved in the hearts of Muslims, as well as written down, during the lifetime of
the Prophet (r). Since people entered Islaam at various points during the
Prophet’s mission, only a few of them heard all of the Qur’aan directly from the
Prophet (r). Some companions were able to memorize better than others. So,
even though all of them memorized portions of the Qur’aan, only a few were able
to memorize all of the Qur’aan during the Prophet’s lifetime.
When the Prophet (r) died in the year 632 CE, the whole of the Qur’aan was
not written down in one complete book. It was recorded on various pieces of
writing material and kept in the possession of different followers of the Prophet
(r). Each had sections, but none of them had all of it. Because of the fact that
the verses of the Qur’aan continued to be revealed up until a few months before
the Prophet’s death, the companions were more concerned with recording and
memorizing than putting it all together in one book. Consequently, the gathering
of the Qur’aan into one text was not done during the lifetime of the Prophet (r).
After the death of the Prophet (r), there arose three main groups opposed to
Islaam in the Arabian peninsula:
1. The first group was made up of those who decided that they did not want to
pay the Islaamic tax, zakaah, to anyone other than the Prophet (r). They did
not feel that zakaah was a pillar of Islaam like salaah, sawm and hajj. They
instead looked at zakaah as a tribute; a kind of tax paid to the one who
conquered them. So, when the Prophet (r) died, they felt that they were no
longer required to pay it. When Aboo Bakr became the leader of the Muslim
state, this group refused to pay the zakaah and sent armies to the capital,
Madeenah, in order to topple the Muslim state. They demanded to be excused
from paying zakaah, or else they would attack and destroy the centers of
Islaam.71
2. The first group was joined by those who had entered Islaam in order to escape
defeat, as well as those who simply wanted to be on the winning side. This
group did not believe in Allaah and His Messenger at all. They wanted to
71
See al-Bidaayah wa an-Nihaayah, vol. 6, p. 380.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 32
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
destroy Islaam so they could be free to do whatever they wanted to do. Since
the armies of those who refused to pay zakaah appeared strong, many of these
hypocrites joined them.
3. The third group was made up of a number of false prophets and prophetesses
and their followers. In Najd, in the region of Yamaamah, an Arab from the
tribe of Banoo Haneefah named Musaylamah claimed prophethood. In the
southern part of Arabia, another Arab from the tribe of ‘Ans called al-Aswad
claimed prophethood and took over Najraan and Yemen. In northern Arabia a
woman named Sajaah from the Banoo Tameem tribe also claimed prophethood
and rose in arms against the Muslim state.72 These false prophets all invited
people to leave Islaam by claiming that Allaah had revealed new laws to them
making allowable most of the things which were forbidden by Allaah through
Prophet Muhammad (r).
True Muslims under the leadership of Caliph Aboo Bakr were forced to fight
these three groups in order to reestablish Islaam throughout the Arabian
peninsula.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 33
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Prophet (r) had ordered them to write down the various verses and chapters of
the Qur’aan while it was being revealed in order to help preserve it. Compiling
all of what was written into one complete book was then only the completion of
what the Prophet (r) had begun.
Caliph Aboo Bakr asked Zayd ibn Thaabit to be in charge of collecting and
writing down the whole Qur’aan. Zayd refused to do it at first for the same
reasons Aboo Bakr had, but after some time he also came to realize that it was
right.74 Zayd was chosen for this task for the following reasons:
Zayd began the process by collecting all of the materials on which the
Qur’aan had been written. He then gathered around him all of those who had also
memorized all of the Qur’aan or large portions of it. He then compared what was
written down with what he and the others had memorized. If all agreed, he would
then write it down on pages of leather. 79 In this way the whole Qur’aan was
written down during the reign of the first Caliph. On its completion Zayd turned it
over to Caliph Aboo Bakr, who kept it until his death two years after he had
become Caliph.
Just before his death, Aboo Bakr turned over the Qur’aan to ‘Umar, whom he
had chosen to be the second Caliph. ‘Umar kept his copy of the Qur’aan with him
until his death, ten years later, at the hand of an assassin named Aboo Lu’lu’. 80
The Qur’aan was then turned over to his daughter Hafsah, who was one of the
74
See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 477-8, no. 509.
75
See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 199.
76
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 488, no. 525.
77
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 94-5, nos. 116-7.
78
As-Suyootee quotes al-Baghawee’s statement to that effect in Sharh as-Sunnah as well as a
statement by Ibn Seereen that would support that, collected by Ibn Abee Shaybah in Kitaabah al-
Masaahif . See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 142.
79
See Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol. 3, p. 59, no. 2479.
80
See al-Bidaayah wa an-Nihaayah, vol. 7, p.166.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 34
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Prophet’s widows. Hafsah kept the Qur’aan in her house in Madeenah, but she
made it available to anyone who wanted to make copies from it or check the
accuracy of what they had memorized. 81
After the death of the second Caliph, ‘Umar ibn al-Khattaab, a committee
made up of six of the most famous companions of the Prophet (r) chose
‘Uthmaan ibn ‘Affaan to be the third caliph.
During the reign of Caliph ‘Umar (634-644 CE/13-23 AH), the Islaamic state
had expanded beyond the borders of the Arabian peninsula into Egypt, Syria and
‘Iraaq. In the subsequent reign of Caliph ‘Uthmaan, the expansion continued on
into Persia, India, Russia, China, Turkey and across North Africa. Many of the
people of these regions accepted Islaam and learned the recitation of the Qur’aan
from the early Muslims. The Qur’aan was revealed to the Prophet (r) in seven
different Arabian dialects, and the early Muslims taught the Qur’aan in its
different readings.
81
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 163-4, no. 201.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 35
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
head a committee of four Qur’aanic scholars who would take on the task of
making the official copies.82
When the copies were completed, the original was returned to Hafsah. A
total of seven copies were made and one was sent to Makkah, another to Syria,
one to Basrah, one to Koofah, one to Yemen, one to Bahrayn, and one was kept in
the capital, Madeenah.83 Apparently, different copies were written by different
members of the committee.84 Caliph ‘Uthmaan sent an official reciter of the
Qur’aan with each copy in order to clear up any problems which might later
arise. 85 He also ordered that all other copies of the Qur’aan be destroyed, as
people had made notes on their personal copies and some copies were
incomplete.86 All new copies were then made from the official copy, called Mus-
haf ‘Uthmaan. In that way the Qur’aan was saved from any kind of change or
loss. This process was completed in the year 646 CE, two years after ‘Uthmaan
became the new Caliph.
82
See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 478-9, no. 510 and Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol. 3, pp. 59-
60, no. 2480.
83
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 172.
84
Ma‘ al-Masaahif, p. 99.
85
Ibid. pp. 97-8.
86
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 478-9, no. 510.
87
Ma‘ al-Masaahif, p. 113.
88
Ma‘ al-Masaahif, p. 113
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 36
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
89
Ibid., p. 114
90
Ibid., p. 117
91
Muhammad Rasullullah, p. 179.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 37
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Scholars differ on the total number of sahaabah who had memorized all of
the Qur’aan and read it back to the Prophet (r) before his death. Imaam Al-
Bukhaaree collected in his Saheeh a statement of Anas ibn Maalik that only four
people had gathered the whole Qur’aan in the Prophet’s lifetime: Aboo ad-
Dardaa’, Mu‘aath ibn Jabal, Zayd ibn Thaabit and Aboo Zayd.92 Scholars agree
that the apparent limitation in Anas’s statement is either not what he intended or,
if he did intend it, that it was not accurate. It seems he made this statement in the
course of a friendly argument between members of the two tribes of the Ansaar
about the virtues of each tribe. The individuals Anas named were all from the
Khazraj tribe to which he belonged, and he meant to say that no one from the Aws
tribe had memorized all of it.93 There are two versions of this statement. The
other version simply states that four people memorized the whole Qur’aan,
without saying they were the only ones, and it mentions Ubayy ibn Ka‘b in place
of Aboo ad-Dardaa’.94
In another report collected by al-Bukhaaree, the Prophet (r) instructed his
companions to learn the Qur’aan from Ibn Mas‘ood, Saalim, the freed slave of
Aboo Huthayfah, Mu‘aath and Ubayy. 95 Other authentic evidence indicates that
Aboo Bakr and ‘Abdullaah ibn ‘Amr ibn al-‘Aas had memorized all of it.96
However, there are two hadeeths reported by al-Bukhaaree to indicate that the
number was higher than that. In the incident of Bi’r Ma‘oonah, seventy sahaabah,
all of them qurraa’, were ambushed and killed. 97 The word qurraa’ is the plural
of qaaree’, which is used for a memorizer of the Qur’aan who is proficient in
reciting it, although the sahaabah seem to have also used the term for one who is
knowledgeable about its meanings. Seventy of the sahaabah who had memorized
the whole Qur’aan, most of them from the Ansaar, died fighting in the battle of
92
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 488-9, no. 526.
93
See Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 8, pp. 668-9.
94
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 488, no. 525.
95
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 486-7, no. 521.
96
Ibn Hajar deduced that Aboo Bakr was a haafith from the fact that the Prophet (r) appointed
him to lead the salaah when he himself was too ill to do so, and he had earlier stated that the
imaam in salaah should be the most proficient in Qur’aan. See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, pp. 364-
5, no. 646, and Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 326, nos. 1417-20. The Prophet (r) instructed ‘Abdullaah
not to finish reciting the whole Qur’aan in less than seven days. See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp.
516-7, no. 572.
97
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 5, pp. 287-8, no. 416.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 38
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Yamaamah only two years after the death of the Prophet (r).98 If they had not
completed their memorization of it before his death, they must have done so for a
substantial portion of it.
Some people have tried to argue on the basis of Anas’s statement collected by
al-Bukhaaree that the number of people who memorized the Qur’aan during the
lifetime of the Prophet (r) was too small to support the Muslim claim that the
Qur’aan was conveyed to us by tawaatur.99 Even if we accept this report at face
value, its use to support that argument is not strong, because, although the number
of people who had memorized the whole Qur’aan in the Prophet’s lifetime may
have been limited, many others had memorized substantial, overlapping portions.
So during his lifetime the number of memorizers was great for any given portion
of the Qur’aan. Many of these completed their memorization of it after his death.
In fact, with every succeeding generation of Muslims, the numbers of those who
memorized all of the Qur’aan has increased. Today there are literally hundreds of
thousands of Muslims throughout the world who have done so.
There is no other book, religious or otherwise, which has been memorized on
this scale in recorded history. The Qur’aan is about four-fifths the length of the
New Testament of the Christians, yet not a single person in recorded history is
known to have memorized the New Testament completely. In fact, if all of the
books in the world were somehow destroyed, the only book which could be
rewritten, word for word, without a single mistake is the Glorious Qur’aan.
One of the leading orientalists, Kenneth Cragg, said the following regarding
the memorization and preservation of the Qur’aanic text, “This phenomenon of
Qur’anic recital means that the text has traversed the centuries in an unbroken
living sequence of devotion. It cannot, therefore, be handled as an antiquarian
thing, nor as a historical document out of a distant past.”100 Another orientalist
scholar, William Graham, wrote: “For countless millions of Muslims over more
than fourteen centuries of Islamic history, ‘scripture’, al-kitab, has been a book
learned, read and passed on by vocal repetition and memorisation. The written
Qur’an may ‘fix’ visibly the authori-tative text of the Divine Word in a way
unknown in history, but the authoritativeness of the Qur’anic book is only realised
98
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 477-8, no. 509.
99
Tawaatur is the transmission of a report by such a large number of narrators that they couldn’t
have gotten together to fabricate a lie nor could they all agree upon an errror.
100
The Mind of the Qur’an, p. 26.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 39
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
in its fullness and perfection when it is correctly recited.”101 Yet another, John
Burton, stated: “The method of transmitting the Qur’an from one generation to the
next by having the young memorise the oral tradition of their elders had mitigated
somewhat from the beginning the worst perils of relying solely on written
records...”102 At the end of a voluminous work on the Qur’aan’s collection,
Burton stated that the text of the Qur’aan available today is “the text which has
come down to us in the form in which it was organised and approved by the
Prophet....What we have today in our hands is the mus-haf103 of Muhammad.”104
Significance of the Qur’aan’s Preservation
Allaah promised in the Qur’aan that He would take on the responsibility of
protecting His final word from loss. He said,
Thus, the Qur’aan has been preserved in both the oral as well as written form in a
way no other religious book in history has.
Why did Allaah preserve the Qur’aan and allow His earlier books of divine
revelation to be changed or lost? The answer to that question lies in the following
three facts:
1. The earlier prophets and their books were sent to a particular people in
particular periods of history. Once the period ended, a new prophet was sent
with a new book to replace the previous book. So, it was not necessary that
these books be preserved by Allaah. The preservation of the earlier books was
left up to the people as a test for them. Thus, when the people went astray,
they changed what was written in the books which their prophets brought in
101
Beyond the Written Word, p. 80.
102
An Introduction to the Hadith, p. 27.
103
The Arabic term used to refer to the text of the Qur’aan.
104
The Collection of the Qur’an, p. 239-40.
105
Soorah al-Hijr (15):9.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 40
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
order to make allowable the things which were forbidden to them. In that way,
all of the earlier books of revelation became either changed or lost.
2. Prophet Muhammad (r) was the last prophet whom Allaah sent, and he was
not sent to a particular people or a particular time. He was sent to all of
mankind until the end of the world. Allaah said in the Qur’aan,
Thus, his book of revelation, the Qur’aan, had to be specially preserved from any
form of change or loss so that it would be available to all the generations of man
until the last day of the world.
3. The Qur’aan was the main miracle given to Prophet Muhammad (r) to prove
that he was a true prophet of Allaah and not an imposter. So, the Qur’aan had
to be saved to prove to the later generations that Muhammad (r) was really the
last prophet of Allaah. All of the false prophets who came after Prophet
Muhammad (r) brought books which they claimed to be revealed from Allaah,
but none of them have the miraculous ability to be memorized by thousands,
nor have they improved on the message of the Qur’aan.
The significance of the Qur’aan’s preservation is that Islaam has been kept in
its original purity because of it. Humanity can always return to the sources of
Islaam no matter what people may have added or forgotten in time. All of the
essential principles of Islaam are to be found in the Qur’aan. Consequently, the
preservation of the Qur’aan meant the preservation of Islaam in its final form. The
loss of the Gospel of Jesus means that Christians can never return to the true
teachings of Prophet Jesus except by accepting Islaam. 107 Similarly, the original
Torah was lost when Solomon’s Temple in Jerusalem was destroyed by the
106
Soorah Saba’ (34):28.
107
See The Five Gospels, pp. 2-16.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 41
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Babylonians.108 Thus, the Jews cannot return to the pure teachings of Prophet
Moses except by following Islaam.
It is only in Islaam that the pure teachings of the prophets have been
preserved without any change. That is why Allaah said in the Qur’aan,
108
See The New Encyclopaedia Britannica , vol. 14, p. 757.
109
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):19.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 42
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
8
_________________________
(. ِﺓﻭﺭﺫِﻩِ ﺍﻟﺴ ﻫﻀِﻊِ ﻤِﻥﻭﺫﹶﺍ ﺍﻟﹾﻤ ﹶﺔ ﺒِﻬﺫِﻩِ ﺍﻟﹾﺂﻴ ﻫﻊ ﺃَﻀﻨِﻲ ﺃَﻥﺭﻼﹶﻡ ﻓﹶﺄَﻤﻪِ ﺍﻟﺴﻠﹶﻴﺭِﻴلُ ﻋ) ﺃَﺘﹶﺎﻨِﻲ ﺠِﺒ
‘Jibreel came to me and ordered me to place this aayah in this place in this
soorah:
1
Arabic-English Lexicon, vol. 1, p. 135.
2
Ibid., vol. 1, p. 1465.
3
Soorah an-Nahl (16):90. The report was collected by Ahmad (no. 17240). It has Layth ibn Abee
Sulaym ibn Zunaym in the isnaad. Ibn Hajar said about him, “He was sadooq (truthful) but he
became very befuddled (in his old age) and his hadeeth could not be sorted out, so they abandoned
him.” However, Muslim relies on him when his reports corroborate others. (See Taqreeb at-
Tahtheeb, p. 464, no. 5685.) Ahmad reports in another hadeeth that ‘Uthmaan told Ibn ‘Abbaas,
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The Prophet (r) also made reference to aayahs in particular positions in soorahs.
For example, Aboo ad-Dardaa’ reported that the Prophet (r) said,
(ﺎﺀِ ؟ﺓِ ﺍﻟﻨﱢﺴﻭﺭﻑِ ﺍﻟﱠﺘِﻲ ﻓِﻲ ﺁﺨِﺭِ ﺴﻴﺔﹸ ﺍﻟﺼ ﺁﻴ) ﺃَﻻﹶ ﺘﹶﻜﹾﻔِﻴﻙ
“ Isn’t the verse (revealed) in the summer, the one at the end of Soorah an-Nisaa’,
enough for you?” 5
If the order of the verses was not fixed, these hadeeths, and others like them,
which attach special benefits for particular verses would be meaningless. There
are also numerous authentic reports in which the Prophet (r) recited soorahs
with the verses in order during salaah (prayer), Jumu‘ah sermons, etc.
During the second copying of the Qur’aan, Caliph ‘Uthmaan personally
checked the position of each aayah in every soorah, making sure that every one
was in place, even if they were abrogated verses. Ibn az-Zubayr reported that he
said to Caliph ‘Uthmaan, “The verse: ‘And those of you who die, leaving wives
behind...’6 has been canceled by the other aayah, so why are you having it written
“Soorahs were revealed to the Prophet (r) over a period of time. Whenever something would be
revealed to him, he would call one of his scribes and tell him, ‘Place this in the soorah that
mentions such-and-such.’ (Musnad Ahmad, nos. 376 and 468.) The hadeeth was also collected by
Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 1, pp. 201-2, no. 785) and at-Tirmithee and has seven
isnaads, all containing Yazeed al-Faarisee, who was classified as maqbool (acceptable for
corroborative reports) by Ibn Hajar. (See Taqreeb at-Tahtheeb, p. 606, no. 7796.) The rest of the
narrators are highly reliable. The hadeeth is thus weak by itself, but it may be used where it
corroborates another report, such as the hadeeth of ‘Uthmaan ibn Abee al-‘Aas.
4
Collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, pp. 386-7, no. 1766) and Aboo Daawood (Sunan
Abu Dawud, vol. 3, p.1203, no. 4309).
5
Sahih Muslim, vol. 3, p. 854, no. 3937.
6
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):240.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
[or why are you allowing it to stay written]?” He replied, “O my nephew, I will
not remove anything from its original place.”7
Similarly, the order of the soorahs was fixed by the Prophet (r) himself,
although it is recorded that ‘Alee ibn Abee Taalib had compiled a text in which
the soorahs were ordered according to the time of their revelation. That is, it
began with Soorah al-‘Alaq, then al-Mudath-thir, and then Noon. It has also been
recorded that Ibn Mas‘ood had a text which began with Soorah al-Baqarah, then
an-Nisaa’, and then Aal‘Imraan; while Ubayy had one which began with Soorah
al-Faatihah, then al-Baqarah, an-Nisaa’, and Aal ‘Imraan.8 However, none of
these great companions of the Prophet (r) argued with the order confirmed by
Caliph ‘Uthmaan and the committee of sahaabah that copied and distributed
copies of the Qur’aan to the various centers of the Muslim state. In fact, these and
other companions burned their copies in order to avoid any confu-sion. 9 None of
this would have taken place if the order of the soorahs was not fixed.
It should also be noted that Jibreel reviewed the Qur’aan once during every
Ramadaan of the Prophet’s life except during the final year, in which he recited it
to him twice.10 For such a review to be of any value, a fixed order had to have
been there, especially considering the fact that some of the sahaabah used to
listen to the Prophet (r) as he recited it to Jibreel.
There is nothing recorded from the Prophet (r) to indicate that the script used
to copy the Qur’aan during Caliph ‘Uthmaan’s era was fixed. Caliph ‘Uthmaan
told the scribes to write it according to the Qurayshee dialect if any difference
arose in spelling. Hence, when Zayd ibn Thaabit differed with the other three
Qurayshee scribes over the word taaboot, and Zayd wanted to write it ﺗﺎﺑﻮة
7
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 40, no. 53.
8
See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, pp. 181-3, and Ma‘ al-Masaahif, pp. 81-7.
9
See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, pp. 170-1. As-Suyootee quotes a report he classified as authentic, which
was collected by Ibn Abee Daawood in Kitaab al-Masaahif, that after‘Uthmaan’s death, ‘Alee
defended his reputation from people who tagged him “the mus-haf burner,” explaining that he did
so only after consulting the leading companions and receiving their approval.
10
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 486, no. 519.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
(taabooh), ‘Uthmaan said, “Write it ( ﺗﺎﺑﻮتtaaboot), for verily, the Qur’aan was
revealed according to the Qurayshee dialect.”11
However, the majority of scholars considered it preferable that the original
spelling be maintained in order to protect the Qur’aan from changes which might
result from the evolution of writing rules with the passage of time. These rules
also vary from country to country, which could have led to disunity and discord
over the very text of the Qur’aan. Hence, when Imaam Maalik was asked whether
the Qur’aan could be written according to the dictation rules of his time, he
replied, “No, it should only be written according to the way that it was originally
written.”12
Other scholars, such as Qaadee al-Baaqillaanee (died 1013 CE/403 AH) and
Ibn Khaldoon (died 1405 CE/808 AH), considered it permissible to write the
Qur’aan according to the rules of standard Arabic, from which the ‘Uthmaanee
Mus-haf differs slightly. Al-Baaqillaanee argued that for someone to insist upon
writing the Qur’aan according to a specific set of written symbols requires a proof
from the Qur’aan and Sunnah, and there is no such proof. He also mentioned that
some of the prominent sahaabah had mus-hafs which differed from the writing
system employed in the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf.13 Ibn Khaldoon (died 1406 CE/808
AH) argued that the sahaabah wrote the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf at a time when the
rules of Arabic writing had not yet been standardized, therefore there is no need to
stick to their writing where it differs from what became the accepted norm. Al-
‘Izz ibn ‘Abdis-Salaam (died 1282 CE/660 AH) held the position that it was
obligatory to write the mus-haf which ordinary people read according to standard
Arabic in order to protect the ignorant from falling into errors of recitation that
change the meaning. Those who see the permissibility of this change point out
that what people are reading today and calling the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf is really
quite different from the way the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf originally looked. The
changes were all made for one purpose: to make it easier for the average Muslim
to recite the Qur’aan easily and correctly. 14 The defenders of the ‘Uthmaanee
Mus-haf point out that the sahaabah wrote it in such a way as to accomodate the
greatest number of variant authentic recitations, and that writing it according to
modern standard Arabic would make some of the variants impossible to reconcile
with the script.
11
Collected by at-Tirmithee and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol.
3, pp. 60, no. 2480.
12
Reported by Ash-hab and collected by Abu ‘Amr ad-Daanee in Al-Muqni‘. Quoted by as-
Suyootee in al-Itqaan, vol. 4, p. 146.
13
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 133-4.
14
Lamahaat fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 135.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The Qur’aanic texts of ‘Uthmaan’s era were written without dashes (tashkeel,
i.e. fat-hah, kasrah and dammah) to indicate the vowels and without dots (nuqat)
to distinguish between look-alike letters (e.g. Seen and Sheen, Saad and Daad,
etc.) The verses were not numbered, nor were there any punctuation signs to
indicate pauses or even the ending of verses. The following is an example of some
Qur’aanic verses written during that era:
All the literate Arab Muslims of those days possessed a natural grasp of the
language which enabled them to read texts written in this simple form without any
difficulty. However, when non-Arabs began to accept Islaam and learn Arabic,
errors in the recitation of the Qur’aan began to appear, due to their unfamiliarity
with the language. This became especially noticeable in the province of Iraq. In
fact, it is reported that once the grammarian, Abul-Aswad ad-Du’alee (d. 638 CE),
heard someone recite the phrase “rasooluh” in the following verse as “rasoolih.”
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Verily, Allaah and His Messenger are free from (any obligation) to the
idolaters.”15
8cm X 4cm
Later on, dots were added to distinguish between look-alike letters, and
vowel signs evolved from the letters related to them. For example, fat-hah
evolved from the alif and became a straight line above the letter; the kasrah
15
Soorah at-Tawbah (9):3.
16
Manaahil al-‘Irfaan, vol. 1, p. 401.
17
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp.150-51.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
evolved from the yaa’ and became a line below the letter; and dammah evolved
from the waaw and became a tiny waaw written near the end of the letter.
18
See al-Itqaan, vol. 4, pp. 161-62.
19
Musannaf ‘Abdur-Razzaaq, vol. 4, pp. 322-3, no. 7944.
20
Musannaf ‘Abdur-Razzaaq, vol. 4, pp. 323-4, no. 7948. Ibn Seereen seems to have changed his
mind on the issue, as ‘Abdur-Razzaaq has reported that he also expressed disapproval of this
practice.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
among Muslims of memorizing the whole text of the Qur’aan in its original
purity.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
9
_________________________
A lthough Arabic was the common language throughout the Arabian peninsula,
the different environments and histories of the various tribes produced a
wide variety of dialects. In some cases, each tribe used different words to
describe the same object. For example, some tribes called the lion an “ asad,”
while other tribes called it a “ layth,” “ hamzah,” “ hafs,” or a “ ghadanfar.” In
other cases, differences occurred in the way certain letters were pronounced due
to vowelling differences. However, in time the dialect of the tribe of Quraysh
emerged from among the various dialects as the most prominent dialect. The
Qurayshee dialect became the most respected of all the dialects for the following
basic reasons:
1. Makkah and its surrounding area, including the shrine of the Ka‘bah, were
part of the tribal lands of the Quraysh. Each of the various tribes had idols
representing their various tribal gods placed in and around the Ka‘bah. Thus
the Ka‘bah was considered the spiritual center for all of the Arabian tribes,
and pilgrimage to the shrine was made throughout the year.
2. During the month of hajj, pilgrims from all of the tribes used to come to
Makkah in order to perform the rites of hajj. This practice was started by
Prophet Ibraheem and his sons when they first built the Ka‘bah and it remained
a practice among their Arabian descendants; however, many false rituals
involving idolatry and superstition were added to the original rites. The
Quraysh took personal responsibility for supplying drinking water (siqaayah)
for all of the pilgrims and their animals. This was done free of charge as
evidence of their generosity and nobility. Thus, the Quraysh were held in a
highly praiseworthy position among the Arabs.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
3. Makkah stood at the junction of all the major trade routes between Syria and
Persia to the north, and Yemen and Africa to the south. As a result, the
Qurayshee trading class became the richest class among the families in Arabia,
which in turn led to the great respect that was given to the Qurayshee tribe by
the various tribes of Arabia.
In order to take into account the various differences which existed among the
Arabian dialects, Allaah revealed the Qur’aan in seven different forms. The forms
matched the dialects of the following seven tribes: Quraysh, Huthayl, Thaqeef,
Hawaazin, Kinaanah, Tameem, and Yemen. 21 These various forms did not
represent different Qur’aans, as Jibreel only conveyed verses from a single
Qur’aan written on a protected tablet (al-Lawh al-Mahfooth) in the heavens.
However, Jibreel was instructed to recite the verses that he brought in seven forms
corresponding to the dialects of the major tribes. The various forms represented
the various ways in which the same word might be said according to the various
dialects. However, the meanings were all stated the same. The Prophet (r)
informed most of his companions (sahaabah) of the existence of various readings
so that the variation in their readings would not create any discord or division
among them. The sahaabee Ibn ‘Abbaas reported that he heard Allaah’s
Messenger (r) say,
ِ ﺔﻌﺒﻰ ﺇِﻟﹶﻰ ﺴﺘﱠﻰ ﺍﻨﹾﺘﹶﻬﻨِﻲ ﺤﺯِﻴﺩﻴ ﻭﻩﺘﹶﺯِﻴﺩلْ ﺃَﺴ ﺃَﺯ ﻓﹶﻠﹶﻡﺘﹸﻪﻌﺍﺠﻑٍ ﻓﹶﺭﺭﻠﹶﻰ ﺤﺭِﻴلُ ﻋﺃَﻨِﻲ ﺠِﺒ) ﺃَﻗﹾﺭ
(. ٍﻑﺭﺃَﺤ
“ Jibreel recited (the Qur’aan) to me in one form, and after I had revised it I
asked him to recite some more, which he did, until he completed seven forms.” 22
However, not all of the companions were aware of the various readings at the
same time. Consequently, some minor disagreements did take place, which were
resolved by the Prophet (r) himself. An example of such cases can be found in
21
Exactly which dialects is a matter of dispute among those who accept this interpretation of the
seven ahruf. See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 135-6.
22
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 481, no. 513) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 2, p. 390, no. 1785).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
the following incident narrated by one of the Prophet’s closet companions. ‘Umar
ibn al-Khattaab said, “Once during the lifetime of Allaah’s Messenger (r), I
heard Hishaam ibn Hakeem reciting Soorah al-Furqaan in salaah, and I noticed
that he recited it differently from the way in which the Prophet (r) had taught me.
I was on the verge of jumping on him during his salaah, but I managed to control
my anger until he completed his prayer. Upon its completion, I grabbed him by
the neck of his cloak and said, ‘Who taught you this soorah that I heard you
reciting?’ He replied, ‘Allaah’s Messenger (r) taught it to me!’ I said, ‘You are a
liar, for Allaah’s Messenger (r) has taught it to me in a different way from the
way you recited it!’ I then dragged him to Allaah’s Messenger (r) and said to
him, ‘I heard this person reciting Soorah al-Furqaan in a different way from the
way that you taught me.’ Allaah’s Messenger (r) then said, ‘Release him ‘Umar!
Recite Hishaam!’ Hishaam recited in the same way that I heard him reciting
previously. Then the Messenger of Allaah (r) said, ‘It was revealed in this way!’
He then said, ‘Recite ‘Umar!’ When I completed reciting it the way he had taught
me, he said,
(. ﺭﺴﺎ ﺘﹶﻴ ﻤﻭﺍ ﻤِﻨﹾﻪﺀﻑٍ ﻓﹶﺎﻗﹾﺭﺭﺔِ ﺃَﺤﻌﺒﻠﹶﻰ ﺴ ﺃُﻨﹾﺯِ َل ﻋﺁﻥ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﺭ ﺇِﻥ. ﻜﹶﺫﹶﺍ ﺃُﻨﹾﺯِﻟﹶﺕﹾ) ﻫ
‘It was also revealed in this way. This Qur’aan has been revealed in seven forms,
so recite whichever is easiest for you.” 23
Ibn ‘Abdul Barr argued on the basis of this incident that the interpretation of
the seven forms as meaning seven tribal dialects is flawed, since ‘Umar and
Hishaam were both from the Qurayshee tribe. He interpreted it as meaning seven
facets of harmonious meaning conveyed by varying words; for example, words
like halumma, t‘aala, and aqbil, which all mean ‘come.’ Ibn Hajr, after quoting
him, offered the opinion that the two interpretations are not mutually
contradictory. It may be that the variation consists of differing words for the same
meanings and that the variations are from the dialects of seven Arabic tribes.
Ibn Qutaybah proposed a different interpretation of the seven forms:
23
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 482, no. 514) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 2, pp. 389-90, no. 1782). Similar hadeeths are reported on the authority of Ubay ibn
Ka‘b, ‘Abdur-Rahmaan ibn ‘Awf and Aboo Hurayrah. In fact, Ibn al-Jazaree collected the reports
on this issue and found that nineteen of the sahaabah reported it. It is thus considered a
mutawaatir hadeeth in its meaning.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
1. variations in vowel markings, while the letters and meaning are unchanged; for
example laa yudaarra and laa yudaarru in verse 282 of Soorah al-Baqarah:
2. variations in the form of a verb; for example: ba‘‘ada and baa‘id in verse 19 of
Soorah Saba’:
“They said, ‘Our Lord, make the stages between our journeys
longer.’ ”
The variation in this example is in two aspects: between the past tense and the
imperative and between the second form and the third form of the root, i.e. fa‘‘ala
and faa‘ala.
3. variations in dots of letters that have the same basic shape; for example, raa’
and zaa’ in the words nunshiruhaa and nunshizuhaa , two variant wordings of
verse 259 of Soorah al-Baqarah:
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
t•x.©%!$# t,n=y{ $tBur ÇËÈ 4’©?pgrB #sŒÎ) Í‘$pk¨]9$#ur ÇÊÈ 4Óy´øótƒ #sŒÎ) È@ø‹©9$#ur )
( ÇÌÈ #Ós\RW{$#ur
“By the night when it veils, and the day when it shines in brightness,
and Him Who created the male and female...”
The recitation of Ibn Mas‘ood and Aboo ad-Dardaa’ omitted the first three
words of verse 3, wa maa khalaqa, (and [by] Him Who created).
Some recitations added words to what is recorded in the Mus-haf
‘Uthmaan. Al-Bukhaaree collected the statement of Ibn ‘Abbaas, “When the
verse was revealed,
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
the Messenger of Allaah (r) went out, climbed atop the hill of as-Safaa and
shouted...”24 The verse referred to by Ibn ‘Abbaas is verse 214 of Soorah ash-
Shu‘araa’. However, only the first half of it, “Warn your clan of nearest
relations,” appears in the Mus-haf ‘Uthmaan. Some scholars say this is really
an example of naskh (abrogated recitation).25
7. variations due to the use of one synonym in place of another. This is what Ibn
‘Abdul Barr was referring to. An example of this is Ibn Mas‘ood’s recitation of
verse 5 of Soorah al-Qaari‘ah. Instead of ِﻛَﺎﻟْﻌِﮭْﻦِ اﻟْﻤَﻨْﻔُﻮش, he recited ِﻛَﺎﻟﺼﱡﻮف.
ِاﻟْﻤَﻨْﻔُﻮشBoth phrases mean ‘like carded wool.’26
Other scholars, such as Ibn al-Jazaree and Abul-Fadl ar-Raazee, proposed
their own variations on the same principle. Ar-Raazee wrote, “The variations of
language do not go outside seven aspects:
1. variations of nouns between singular, dual and plural and between masculine
and feminine;
2. variations in verb tenses between perfect (past), imperfect (present and future)
and imperative (command);
3. variations in i‘raab (vowel endings that indicate the role of the word in the
sentence);
4. addition and deletion of letters;
5. flipped word order;
6. substitution of one word for another;
7. variations in pronunciation such al-imaalah, al-fat-h, at-tarqeeq, at-tafkheem,
al-idghaam and al-ith-haar.27
24
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 467, no. 495. Note: The translator did not translate the second half
of the Qur’aanic reference cited in the Arabic.
25
See Chapter 12.
26
Quoted by Ibn Hajar in Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 8, p. 645.
27
Quoted by Ibn Hajar in Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 8, p. 646. This view was favored by az-Zarqaanee
in Manaahil al- ‘Irfaan, vol. 1, p. 148.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Ibn Hajr pointed out that there is considerable overlap between all these various
explanations.28
28
Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 8, p. 645.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
same time, some new Muslims also began mixing the various forms out of
ignorance. Caliph ‘Uthmaan decided to make official copies of the Qur’aan
according to the dialect of Quraysh and send them along with Qur’aanic reciters
to the major centers of Islaam. This decision was approved by all of the sahaabah,
and all unofficial copies of the Qur’aan were destroyed. Following the distribution
of the official copies, all the other dialects were dropped and the Qur’aan began to
be read in only one dialect. Thus, the Qur’aan which is available throughout the
world today is written and recited only according to the dialect of the Quraysh.29
The discontinuance of the other six forms does not in any way represent a loss of
any part of the Qur’aan. The sahaabah were given the option by the Prophet (r)
to recite the Qur’aan in any of the seven dialects they wished because the meaning
was the same and the variations were synonymous; and it is they who
unanimously decided to discontinue the use of the other six. Such a decision
could not have been unanimously approved if it in any way entailed the loss of
even the smallest part of the Qur’aan. Thus, the Qur’aan according to the
Qurayshee dialect is, without doubt, a perfect and complete compilation of
Allaah’s revealed word to the last of His prophets and messengers, Muhammad
(r).
A qiraa’ah is, for the most part, a method of pronunciation used in the
recitations of the Qur’aan. These methods are different from the seven forms or
modes (ahruf) in which the Qur’aan was revealed. The seven modes were reduced
to one, that of Quraysh, during the era of Caliph ‘Uthmaan when he ordered that
the Qur’aan be copied in the Qurayshee dialect and distributed among the
Islaamic centers of the time. Hence, only the Qurayshee mode remains today and
all of the methods of recitation are based on this mode. The various methods have
all been traced back to the Prophet (r) through a number of the sahaabah who
were most noted for their Qur’aanic recitations. That is, these sahaabah recited
the Qur’aan to the Prophet (r) or in his presence and received his approval.
29
This is the opinion of a group of scholars. Others maintain that some aspects of the different
dialects have been preserved in the varying qiraa’aat, but only those which are reconcilable with
the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf. They say the sahaabah wrote the ‘Uthmaanee Mus-haf in such a way as
to maximize the number of ahruf compatible with it. As-Suyootee, Ibn Hajar and Ibn al-Jazaree all
supported the second opinion and attributed it to the majority of scholars. See al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p.
142, and Ma‘ al-Masaahif, p. 34.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Among them were the following: Ubayy ibn Ka‘b, ‘Ali ibn Abee Taalib, Zayd ibn
Thaabit, Ibn Mas‘ood, Aboo ad-Dardaa’, and Aboo Moosaa al-Ash‘aaree. Many
of the other sahaabah learned from these masters. Ibn ‘Abbaas, the master
commentator of the Qur’aan among the sahaabah, learned from both Ubayy and
Zayd. 30
Among the next generation of Muslims, referred to as the taabi‘oon, there
arose many scholars who learned the various methods of recitation from the
sahaabah and taught them to others. Centers of Qur’aanic recitation developed in
Madeenah, Makkah, Koofah, Basrah, and ash-Shaam (Greater Syria), leading to
the evolution of Qur’aanic recitation into an independent science.31 By the mid-
eighth century CE, there existed a large number of outstanding scholars, all of
whom were considered specialists in the field of recitation. Most of their methods
of recitation were authenticated by chains of reliable narrators, ending with the
Prophet (r). Those methods on each level of their chain were called mutawaatir
and were considered to be the most accurate. Those methods in which the number
of narrators were few or one on any level of the chain were referred to as shaath.
However, some of the scholars of the following period began the practice of
designating a set number of individual scholars from the previous period as being
the most noteworthy and accurate reciters.
By the middle of the tenth century CE (6th century AH), it became a popular
convention to limit the number of best reciters to seven, since this number
coincided with the number of dialects in which the Qur’aan was revealed.
Similarly, during this period the number of schools of Islaamic law (math-habs)
were reduced to the famous four after a period in which there were many. The
first to limit the number of authentic reciters to seven was the ‘Iraaqi scholar,
Aboo Bakr ibn Mujaahid (d. 936 CE), and those who wrote books on qiraa’ah
after him followed suit.32 This limitation is not an accurate representation of the
classical scholars of Qur’aanic recitation. There were many others who were as
good as the seven and a number who were greater than them. In fact, the
classification of scholars was really a classification of how well their methods of
recitation were preserved. Hence, the famous seven were those early scholars
from different generations whose methods of recitation had the most chains of
narrators with many narrations on each level of the chain. However, there were
30
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 204.
31
Ibid., vol. 1, pp. 204-5.
32
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 224.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
At the same time that scholars of hadeeth laid down conditions to determine
the authenticity of statements or actions attributed to the Prophet (r), scholars of
Qur’aanic recitation also formulated conditions to facilitate critical analysis of the
existing recitations. For any given recitation to be accepted as authentic (saheeh),
it had to fulfill three conditions. If any of the conditions were missing, such a
recitation was classified as shaath (unusual). The first condition was that the
recitation have an authentic chain of narration; that is, that the chain of narrators
had to be unbroken, that the narrators were known to be righteous, and that they
were known to possess good memories. It was also required that the recitation be
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
From the beginning of the final phase of prophethood, great stress was placed
on the recitation of the Qur’aan. The very name “Qur’aan” means a “reading” or
“recitation,” and the first verse of the Qur’aan to be revealed was,
The Prophet (r) himself urged his companions to recite as much of the
Qur’aan as they could. Ibn Mas‘ood reported that the Prophet (r) once said,
33
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 214.
34
Soorah al-‘Alaq (96):1.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
(. ﺎﺜﹶﺎﻟِﻬﺸﹾﺭِ ﺃَﻤﻨﹶﺔﹸ ﺒِﻌﺴﺍﻟﹾﺤﻨﹶﺔﹲ ﻭﺴ ﺒِﻪِ ﺤ ﻜِﺘﹶﺎﺏِ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪِ ﻓﹶﻠﹶﻪﻓﹰﺎ ﻤِﻥﺭ َﺃ ﺤ ﻗﹶﺭﻥ) ﻤ
“ Whoever reads a single letter from Allaah’s book will receive a blessing and
each blessing is worth ten times its value.” 35
Aboo Umaamah reported that he said,
(. ﺎﻘﹸﻠِﻬ ﺍﻟﹾﺈِﺒِلِ ﻓِﻲ ﻋ ﺘﹶﻔﹶﻠﱡﺘﹰﺎ ﻤِﻥ ﺃَﺸﹶﺩﻭﺩِﻩِ ﻟﹶﻬﺩٍ ﺒِﻴﻤﺤ ﻤﺍﻟﱠﺫِﻱ ﻨﹶﻔﹾﺱ ﻓﹶﻭﺁﻥﺫﹶﺍ ﺍﻟﹾﻘﹸﺭﻭﺍ ﻫﺩﺎﻫ) ﺘﹶﻌ
“ Be regular in your reading of the Qur’aan. For by the One in whose hand lies
the soul of Muhammad, it will run away more quickly than a camel from its
restraining cord.” 38
Consequently, from the early days of Islaam in its final form, great care has been
paid to the recitation of the Qur’aan. Care was taken to see that the Qur’aan was
recited as closely to the way it was revealed as possible. Scholars who specialized
in the recitation of the Qur’aan formulated rules of recitation based on the
35
Collected by at-Tirmithee and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee, vol.
3, p. 9, no. 2327. See footnote 94.
36
Collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, p. 385, no. 1757).
37
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp.516-7, no. 572) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 2, p. 563, no. 2588).
38
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 505-6, no. 552) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 1, p. 379, no. 1725).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
authentic recitations which they had learned. These rules, in fact, formed the basic
science of Arabic phonetics, outlining the correct method of pronunciation for the
letters of the Arabic alphabet, individual words, and sentences. The science which
evolved out of this concern over the correct recitation of the Qur’aan came to be
known as the science of tajweed. Tajweed was defined as the articulation of each
Arabic sound correctly and distinctly and the pronunciation of each consonant,
vowel, word, and sentence according to the standard of Arabic spoken by the
Prophet’s generation. The scholars also insisted that this should take place without
excessive embellishment and unnatural mannerisms. However, one should recite
the Qur’aan in the best natural voice possible, based upon the Prophet’s
recommendation,
39
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 1, p. 384, no. 1463), Ibn Maajah, Ahmad,
ad-Daarimee and Ibn Hibbaan, and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood,
vol. 1, p. 275, no. 1303.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
10
_________________________
T he Qur’aan is a book of universal guidance for all peoples in all times until
the Day of Judgment, showing them the correct path in their relations with
their Creator and in their relations with themselves as individuals and groups.
At the same time, the Qur’aan was revealed to one man living in a specific time
and place among a specific community. On occasions, certain events would occur
about which the Prophet’s followers were unsure, or on other occasions they
might actually ask him about some matters which were unclear to them. In
response to these and similar needs, verses were revealed to the Prophet (r).
These events represent the context in which revelation came and are referred to as
“ asbaab an-nuzool” (reasons for revelation). The Qur’aan, therefore, uses the
particular to give instructions of universal significance.
For example, when Khawlah bint Tha‘labah’s husband, Aws ibn as-Saamit,
turned his back on her in the marriage bed (thihaar ),40 she went to complain to the
Prophet (r). ‘Aa’ishah, wife of the Prophet (r), said, “Blessed is He who hears
all things. Verily, I heard some of what Khawlah bint Tha‘labah said while she
was complaining about her husband to the Prophet (r). She said, ‘O Messenger of
Allaah (r), he ate up my youth and I spread my stomach for him. Now that I
have grown old and stopped having children, he has turned his back on me. O
Allaah, verily I complain to You!’ An evening did not pass before Jibreel came
down with these verses:
40
By saying to her, as was the custom of the Arabs, “You are to me like my mother’s back.”
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
‘Allaah has heard the statement of the one who disputes with you
about her husband’ ”41
1. Asbaab an-nuzool often explain the wisdom underlying the legislation of some
of the Islaamic laws. Knowledge of the wisdom behind divine laws provides
scholars with general principles which enable them to work out laws for new
problems which have similar causes or effects. Asbaab an-nuzool also show the
concern of the laws for the general welfare of man in their treatment of problems.
This, in turn, makes us aware of Allaah’s mercy, which is a fundamental part of
41
Collected by Ibn Maajah, vol. 3, p. 243, no. 2063, and Ibn Abee Haatim. Authenticated by al-
Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Ibn Maajah, vol. 1, pp. 351-2, no. 1678. The Qur’aanic verse is from
Soorah al-Mujaadilah (58):1.
42
See Manaahil al-‘Irfaan, vol. 1, p. 99.
43
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, p.39.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
all divine laws. For example, Ibn ‘Abbaas reported that Hilaal ibn Umayyah went
to the Prophet (r) and accused his wife (Hilaal’s wife) of adultery with Shurayk
ibn Sahmaa’. The Prophet (r) said to him, “ (Produce) the proof (four witnesses)
or else you will receive the punishment (of eighty lashes) on your back.” Hilaal
replied, “ O Messenger of Allaah (r), if one of us sees a man on his woman,
should he leave and seek witnesses?” Allaah’s Messenger again said, “ (Produce)
the proof or else you will receive the punishment.” Hilaal then said, “ (I swear) By
the One who sent you with the Truth that I am telling the truth. And Allaah will
surely reveal something to free my back from the punishment.” And Jibreel
descended with the revelation,
(#ätu‘ô‰tƒur ÇÐÈ tûüÎ/É‹»s3ø9$# z`ÏB tb%x. bÎ) Ïmø‹n=tã «!$# |MuZ÷ès9 ¨br& èp|¡ÏJ»sƒø:$#ur
šúüÎ/É‹»s3ø9$# z`ÏJs9 ¼çm¯RÎ) «!$$Î/ ¤Nºy‰»pky- yìt/ö‘r& y‰pkô¶s? br& z>#x‹yèø9$# $pk÷]tã
( ÇÒÈ tûüÏ%ω»¢Á9$# z`ÏB tb%x. bÎ) !$pköŽn=tæ «!$# |=ŸÒxî ¨br& sp|¡ÏJ»sƒø:$#ur ÇÑÈ
“And for those who accuse their wives without witnesses except
themselves, the testimony of one of them (can be accepted) by bearing
witness (with an oath) by Allaah four times that he is telling the truth,
and the fifth time that the curse of Allaah be upon him if he is telling a
lie. However, it would avert punishment from (the wife) if she bears
witness four times (with an oath) by Allaah that he is lying, and the
fifth (time) that Allaah’s wrath be upon her if he was truthful.”44
44
Soorah an-Noor (24):6-9. The hadeeth was collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6,
p. 245-6, no. 271), at-Tirmithee, and Ibn Maajah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
2. Sometimes the reasons for revelation specify the particular aspect which was
intended from the general meaning of the verses. That is, the obvious meaning of
the verse may be general enough to include circumstances not intended by Allaah.
An example of this is the verse,
öNs9 $oÿÏ3 (#r߉yJøtä† br& tbq™6Ït䆨r (#qs?r& !$yJÎ/ tbqãmt•øÿtƒ tûïÏ%©!$# ¨ûtù|¡øtrB Ÿw )
( ÇÊÑÑÈ ÒOŠÏ9r& ë>#x‹tã öNßgs9ur ( É>#x‹yèø9$# z`ÏiB ;oy—$xÿyJÎ/ Nåk¨]u;|¡øtrB Ÿxsù (#qè=yèøÿtƒ
“You should not think that those who are happy with what they have
brought about and enjoy being praised for things they have not done,
will successfully escape the punishment. They will have a painful
punishment.”45
Marwaan46 told his gateman, “O Raafi‘, go to Ibn ‘Abbaas and say to him, ‘If
every man among us who is happy about what he has brought about and likes to
be praised for what he has not done will be punished, then we will all be
punished.’ ” (When he did so) Ibn ‘Abbaas replied, “What has happened to you
all concerning that verse? Verily it was revealed concerning the People of the
Book.”47 He then recited (the verse previous to it),
Ÿwur Ĩ$¨Z=Ï9 ¼çm¨Zä^ÍhŠu;çFs9 |=»tGÅ3ø9$# (#qè?ré& tûïÏ%©!$# t,»sVŠÏB ª!$# x‹s{r& øŒÎ)ur )
$tB }§ø©Î7sù ( WxŠÎ=s% $YYoÿsS ¾ÏmÎ/ (#÷ruŽtIô©$#ur öNÏdÍ‘qßgàß uä!#u‘ur çnrä‹t7uZsù ¼çmtRqßJçGõ3s?
( ÇÊÑÐÈ šcrçŽtIô±o„
45
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):188.
46
Marwaan ibn al-Hakam was a governor of Madeenah under Mu‘aawiyah. He later became the
Caliph, and his descendants ruled until the Umayyads were finally overthrown.
47
Christians and Jews.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And when Allaah took the solemn pledge of those who were given a
Book (of revelation), (saying to them), ‘Make it known to mankind,
and do not conceal it!’ But they cast this (pledge) behind their backs
and bartered it away for a trifling gain; and how evil was their
bargain.”48
Ibn ‘Abbaas then said, “When Allaah’s Messenger (r) asked them about
something, they concealed it from him and gave something else in its place. They
then went out, making him think that they had informed him about what he had
asked and they sought his praise and thanks. They were also very happy about
having been able to hide from him what he asked about.”49 Hence, the verse does
not refer to everyone who is happy about what they have done, but specifically
those who are happy about being given books of revelation, yet they hide its
meanings from those who wish to know the truth.
3. The reason for revelation sometimes clarifies the laws which may be deduced
from the verses. The obvious meaning of the verse may imply a particular law,
whereas the circumstances under which the verse was revealed indicate another
law. For example, ‘Urwah once said to his aunt ‘Aa’ishah, wife of the Prophet
(r), “Do you know the verse,
Ÿxsù t•yJtFôã$# Írr& |MøŠt7ø9$# ¢kym ô`yJsù ( «!$# ͬ̕!$yèx© `ÏB nourö•yJø9$#ur $xÿ¢Á9$# ¨bÎ) )
I do not feel that there is any sin on one who does not walk between them.”
‘Aa’ishah replied, “What a terrible thing you have said, O my nephew! Verily, if
the (verse) meant as you interpreted it, it would have been, ‘So there is so sin on
anyone who does not walk between them.’ But verily, it was revealed because the
48
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):187.
49
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 73-4, no. 91) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 4, p. 1458, no. 6687).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Ansaar,50 before Islaam, used to dedicate their (hajj or ‘umrah) to two idols, Isaaf
and Naa’ilah, on the seashore. The people went there, then walked between as-
Safaa and al-Marwah, then got their heads shaved. After Islaam they didn’t like to
walk between them, because of what they used to do during the Days of
Ignorance. Hence, Allaah revealed the verse, ‘Verily as-Safaa and al-Marwah
are among the shrines of Allaah...’ ”51 In another version she added, “Then
Allaah’s Messenger (r) showed how the walk between them should be done.
Thus, no one is allowed to drop the walking between them.”52 Although the
obvious meaning of the verse indicated that the walking between Mount as-Safaa
and Mount al-Marwah was merely mubaah (allowable), the reason for revelation
indicates that it is waajib (compulsory).
Method of Interpretation
The verses may be general or specific and the reason for revelation may
either confirm the general implications of the verses or their specific implication,
or it may qualify them.
1. In the first case where the reason for revelation confirms the general
implication of the verse, the verse should be interpreted according to its general
meaning. For example, Anas ibn Maalik reported that the Jews used to remove
their women from their houses when they menstruated. They would not eat,
drink, or sit with them in their houses. When the Messenger of Allaah (r) was
asked about it, Allaah revealed the verse,
50
Literally, “The Helpers.” Islaamically, it refers to the Muslims of Madeenah, who gave the
Prophet (r) and his companions refuge when they fled Makkah.
51
Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, p. 644, no. 2923. The Qur’aanic verse is from Soorah al-Baqarah (2):158.
52
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 2, pp. 412-3, no. 706) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 2, p. 645, no. 2926).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇËËËÈ šúïÌ•ÎdgsÜtFßJø9$# •=Ïtä†ur tûüÎ/º§q-G9$# •=Ïtä† ©!$# ¨bÎ) 4 ª!$# ãNä.t•tBr& ß]ø‹ym
“They ask you about menstruation. Say: ‘It is a harm, so keep away
(sexually) from women during menses. And do not approach them
(sexually) until they have become purified. But if they have cleaned
themselves, you may approach them (sexually) in the way that Allaah
has ordered you. Verily, Allaah loves those who repent often and
cleanse themselves.’ ”53
2. In the second case, where specific implications of the verse are confirmed by
the reason for the revelation, the verse should be interpreted according to its
specific meaning. For example, ‘Urwah reported that Aboo Bakr as-Siddeeq set
free six or seven slaves, all of whom were being tortured because of their belief in
Allaah: Bilaal, ‘Aamir ibn Fuhayrah, an-Nahdeeyah and her daughter, Umm
‘Eesaa, and a slave girl of the Naw’il clan; and the following verses were revealed
about him:
53
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):222.
54
Collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 175-6, no. 592), Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu
Dawud, vol. 1, p. 64, no. 258), at-Tirmithee, and Ibn Maajah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 30
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
>‰tnL{ $tBur ÇÊÑÈ 4’ª1u”tItƒ ¼ã&s!$tB ’ÎA÷sム“Ï%©!$# ÇÊÐÈ ’s+ø?F{$# $pkâ:¨Zyfã‹y™ur )
ÇËÉÈ 4’n?ôãF{$# ÏmÎn/u‘ Ïmô`ur uä!$tóÏGö/$# žwÎ) ÇÊÒÈ #“t“øgéB 7pyJ÷èÏoR `ÏB ¼çny‰YÏã
“But (the Hell Fire) will be avoided by the most God-fearing, he who
gives his wealth for self-purification and does not seek a favor as a
reward from anyone, but only seeks the face of his Lord Most High,
and he will soon be pleased.”55
55
Soorah al-Layl (92):17-21. ‘Urwah’s statement was collected by Ibn Abee Haatim. At-Tabaree
quotes two supporting narrations, both of them mursal. Tafseer at-Tabaree, vol. 12, p. 260.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 31
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Ü=»ysô¹r& öNåk¨Xr& öNçlm; šú¨üt7s? $tB ω÷èt/ .`ÏB 2†n1ö•è% ’Í<'ré& (#þqçR%Ÿ2 öqs9ur
( ÇÊÊÌÈ ÉOŠÅspgø:$#
“It is not fitting for the Prophet (r) and those who believe to seek
forgiveness for the pagans, even if they were close relatives, after it has
become clear to them that (their relatives) are dwellers of the Fire.”56
Hence, the verse prohibiting prayers seeking forgiveness applies to all Muslims in
cases where their parents or relatives have died in a state of disbelief, even though
it was revealed in reference to Aboo Taalib before his death.
The guiding principle to be followed when interpreting or applying the verses
of the Qur’aan is that the lesson lies in the general meaning of the words and not
simply in the special circumstances in which they were revealed. However, know-
ledge of the events surrounding the revelations puts the general meaning of the
verses in proper context and prevents deviation. For example, Yoosuf ibn
Maahak reported that when Marwaan was governor of al-Hijaaz, Caliph
Mu‘aawiyah desired that his son Yazeed be caliph after him, so he wrote to
Marwaan. Marwaan then gathered the people of Madeenah and addressed them,
inviting them to take an oath of allegiance to Yazeed ibn Mu‘aawiyah as caliph
after his father. When he added that it was the sunnah (way) of Aboo Bakr and
‘Umar, ‘Abdur-Rahmaan ibn Abee Bakr answered that it was the sunnah of
Heraclius and Caesar. Marwaan then ordered that he be seized, so ‘Abdur-
Rahmaan entered ‘Aa’ishah’s house and the soldiers were unable to arrest him.
Marwaan then said, “Surely, he is the one about whom this verse was revealed,
56
Soorah at-Tawbah (9):113. The incident was collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol.
6, p. 158, no. 197) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 18, no. 36).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 32
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
‘And the one who said to his parents: “Uff”57 to both of you.’ ”58
When the news of what he said reached ‘Aa’ishah, she said, “Marwaan has lied.
By Allaah, it was not about him, and if I wished to name the one about whom it
was revealed, I could do so.”59
57
An expression of anger or displeasure.
58
Soorah al-Ahqaaf (46):17. The rest of the verse reads, “ ‘Do you threaten me that I will be
brought forth (again) when generations before me have passed away?’ And the two of them
cry out to Allaah for help (and say), ‘Woe to you! Believe! Verily the promise of Allaah is
true.’ But he says, ‘This is nothing but the fables of the earlier (generations).’ ”
59
A combination of narrations collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 338-9, no.
352) and an-Nasaa’ee.
60
See al-Qur’aan al-Kareem (Arabic CD) under ma‘loomaat—maktabah al-Qur’aan.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 33
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
11
_________________________
Makkan revelations are defined as all verses and chapters of the Qur’aan
which were brought by Jibreel to the Prophet (r) before the Hijrah (622 CE).
This includes verses which were revealed in Taa’if, as well as those revealed in
other areas outside of Makkah.1 These revelations represent the first stage of the
Islaamic movement, in which its fundamentals were established.
1
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
3. The Unseen:
Since there was no way that human beings could possibly come to know
about the unseen world, the early verses taught them about its wonders, its
mysteries, and its horrors. The verses described paradise and its pleasures in
order to encourage the believers to continue to do good deeds. They also
2
Cf. 23:1-11; 70:34-5; 73:2; 73:20; 74:38-43.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
described the Hellfire and its torments in order to encourage the believers to strive
to avoid evil deeds. Descriptions of the Fire and its inhabitants also reassured the
believers that those who do wrong in this life will not escape Allaah’s
punishment. Such descriptions were also aimed at scaring the disbelievers into
reconsidering their position before it became too late. Some of the verses also
reasoned with those who could not accept the resurrection by giving them
examples from nature, such as rain falling on dead earth bringing it back to life.
Others pointed out logically that the recreation of life would be easier than its
creation, although it is all the same to Allaah.
4. Allaah’s Existence:
There were some individuals among the Makkans who were in doubt about
Allaah’s very existence. Thus, some of the early verses presented logical
arguments proving Allaah’s existence. Sometimes proofs were taken from nature
and the creatures common to that society. Allaah asked the Makkans,
ÇÚö‘F{$# ’n<Î)ur ÇÊÒÈ ôMt6ÅÁçR y#ø‹x. ÉA$t6Ågø:$# ’n<Î)ur ÇÊÑÈ ôMyèÏùâ‘ y#ø‹Ÿ2
“Why don’t they look at the camels and how they were created, and
the sky and how it was raised, and the mountains and how they are
firmly fixed and the earth and how it was spread out?”3
At other times straight logic was used. Allaah asked them if they were created
from nothing or if they created themselves:
3
Soorah al-Ghaashiyah (88):17-20.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
This verse is amazing in the conciseness of its challenge. There are only three
possible answers to the question of the source of creation. The verse mentions
only two and leaves the third unstated due to its obviousness. It doesn’t bother to
disprove these two possibilities because they are so obviously false. Something
which doesn’t exist doesn’t have the power to bring anything into existence.
Likewise, everyone knows there was a time when he or she didn’t exist, so we
can’t have created ourselves. Even if some were to argue that they came from
their parents and that their parents came from their parents and so on, the chain of
causes must eventually decrease to one whose existence doesn’t depend on
anything. Thus, Allaah, the Creator, has to be accepted for our existence to make
sense. In fact, one of the people of Makkah, Jubayr ibn Mut‘im reported that he
heard the Prophet (r) reciting this passage in his salaah, and it made him feel that
his heart was going to fly, which caused him to eventually accept Islaam. 5
5. Challenges:
In order to prove to the Quraysh that the Qur’aan was from Allaah and that
Muhammad (r) was a prophet of Allaah, some of the Makkan verses challenged
the Arabs to imitate the Qur’aan. Many of the chapters began with individual
letters like “ Alif, Laam and Meem,” “ Saad,” or “ Noon” in order to tease the
Makkans with the same letters of the alphabet with which they made their flowery
speeches and poetry. Allaah revealed the Qur’aan with the same letters, but they
just could not imitate it. Since the Arabs were unable to produce a chapter like
even the smallest chapter of Qur’aan, the miraculous nature of the Qur’aan and its
divine origin were clearly proven to the people at that time. However, many of
them preferred to look at the Qur’aan as a magical spell, and the Prophet (r) as a
master magician.
4
Soorah at-Toor (52):35.
5
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 357-8, no. 377. See also Ibn Hajar’s comments in Fat-h al-Baaree,
vol. 8, p. 469.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
7. Eemaan:
Very few laws were revealed in the Makkan verses. Instead, the verses
concentrated on principles which would build the eemaan (faith) of the early
Muslims. These verses spoke of the importance of fearing Allaah and being
aware of His presence and knowledge of all things. They were often filled with
advice about being patient, perseverant, truthful and trustworthy, in order to build
the moral and spiritual character of the early Muslims, who were in a minority
and under great pressure from Makkan society.
8. Short Verses:
The Makkan soorahs usually had short verses, catchy rhymes, and a very
strong rhythm. These qualities were meant to catch the attention of listeners who
were basically opposed to the message of Islaam. The verses had to be short
because the audience would not be willing to listen to long, drawn-out statements.
As soon as they heard any of the Qur’aan, they would stick their fingers in their
ears and turn away. Thus, the verses often had to strike home immediately. They
often resembled the chants of the oracles and fortunetellers, but their meanings
were very clear, whereas the oracles’ chants were mostly obscure and vague. For
example, the oracle Zabraa warned her people about a disaster that would soon
strike them in the following words:
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Madeenan revelations are all those verses and chapter of the Qur’aan which
were revealed after the Hijrah (the emigration to Madeenah). This includes verses
which were revealed during the battles, as well as those revealed in Makkah and
Minaa during and after the Farewell Pilgrimage. All of these verses are
considered Madeenan because they represent the revelations of the second stage
of the Islaamic movement, in which the consolidation of the Islaamic state took
place. 6
The following are some of the main characteristics of Madeenan verses:
1. Laws:
Once Madeenah had become the new center of the Islaamic movement, the
Islaamic state was born. The Prophet (r) became ruler over the Muslims of
Madeenah, as well as the Jews and the Arab idol worshippers who lived there. A
constitution was drawn up and a system of justice was established. Thus, the
verses during the Madeenan stage contained the many social, economic and
spiritual laws which were necessary for the organization and development of an
6
Al-Itqaan, vol. 1, p. 23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Islaamic state. It was during this period that the last three pillars of Islaam,
zakaah, sawm and hajj, were revealed.7 Likewise, it was during this period that
drinking alcohol, eating swine and gambling were all forbidden.
3. The Munaafiqoon:
For the first time since the beginning of the final message we find people
entering Islaam yet not believing in it. In Makkah, Muslims were oppressed and
attacked, so no one would enter Islaam unless he truly believed. On the other
hand, the Muslims of Madeenah were strong and they ruled the city. Thus, we
find some people entering Islaam in order to benefit from its strength and to
oppose it from within. ‘Abdullaah ibn Ubayy ibn Salool was about to be crowned
king of Madeenah when the Prophet (r) arrived. The Prophet (r) was made the
ruler of Madeenah, and ibn Salool’s hopes were ruined. 8 Since the Muslims were
strong and he could not openly oppose them, he accepted Islaam and worked
against it from within. He eventually became the head of the Munaafiqoon
(hypocrites). Thus, the verses of the Madeenan stage warned the Muslims about
the dangers of the hypocrites and taught them how to deal effectively with them.
7
Zakaah had been prescribed in Makkah, but it was informal at that time; the detailed rules were
not laid down until after the Hijrah.
8
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 3, p. 989, no. 4431.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
4. Jihaad:
The right to fight against the enemy was given for the first time in Madeenah.
During the Makkan period, Muslims were forbidden to fight back. This was for
two basic reasons: (1) The Muslims were a minority and could easily have been
completely wiped out. (2) This was a stage where the believers’ characters were
being forged. One of the foremost qualities required of those who would carry the
message was steadfast patience. Only those of strong faith could survive this test.
The Makkan period prepared the foundation of the Islaamic movement to come. It
was during the Madeenan stage that a series of battles were fought against the
forces of disbelief, until finally Makkah was conquered and the whole of the
Arabian peninsula came under the rule of Islaam. Thus, a number of the
Madeenan verses taught Muslims the Islaamic principles of war. For example,
they taught how to deal with prisoners of war and they forbade retreat during an
attack except as a trick to trap the enemy. They also encouraged the Muslims to
prepare themselves with the best weapons and battle gear they could find.
5. Long Verses:
The Madeenan verses tended to be longer than those of Makkah. In fact, there
are a number of Madeenan verses which are longer than whole soorahs of the
Makkan period. The longest verse of the Qur’aan is the verse on loans in the
Madeenan Soorah al-Baqarah.9 The shortest soorah of the Qur’aan is the Makkan
Soorah al-Kawthar,10 which contains a total of only 11 separate words in its three
short verses. The need to catch the attention of unwilling listeners was no longer
there, because Islaam had become strong and its followers were many. Thus, the
audience at this stage was quite willing to listen attentively to longer verses
teaching the vital laws of Islam.
6. Order of the Soorahs:
Although all of the Makkan verses were revealed during the same period,
they were neither memorized nor written in the same order in which they were
revealed. Verses from various soorahs were revealed together, and sometimes
whole soorahs were revealed at once. Whenever single verses were revealed, the
Prophet (r) would tell his scribes to write it in the soorah to which it belonged. If
9
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):282.
10
The 108th soorah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
a new soorah was revealed, he would recite the soorah in the order it was to be
recorded. Once the Madeenan verses and soorahs began to be revealed, the
Prophet (r) would tell his companions to place them before or after certain
Makkan soorahs and verses. Thus, when the revelation of the Qur’aan was
complete, Makkan verses could be found within Madeenan soorahs and
Madeenan verses within Makkan soorahs. The Prophet (r) ordered the verses and
soorahs of the Qur’aan according to Allaah’s command. The reason for the
mingling may have been that the verses were revealed according to the needs of a
developing community, whereas the order for reading purposes was varied to
make it clear that the Qur’aan is not a mere historical document. By divorcing the
verses from the chronological order of their revelation, the general and universal
aspects of their message are emphasized.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And they ask you about khamr (alcohol) and maysir (gambling); tell
them that they contain some benefit, but the sin is greater than the
benefit.”11
The second law that was revealed warned Muslims away from salaah when they
were intoxicated (drunk). Allaah said,
“Do not come to salaah when you are intoxicated, until you know what
you are saying.”12
The third law, however, was a complete prohibition of even coming near any
form of alcohol. Allaah said,
( çnqç7Ï^tGô_$$sù Ç`»sÜø‹¤±9$#
If one was unaware of the order in which these verses were revealed, he may
mistakenly think that he is allowed to drink alcohol as long as he doesn’t get
drunk and come to salaah. Or, he may think that it is allowed for him to benefit
from the sale of alcohol.
11
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):219.
12
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):43
13
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):90.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
2. Da‘wah:
By understanding the order in which the verses of the Qur’aan were revealed,
one can learn the best method of teaching Islaam. For example, the Qur’aan
taught the believers not to curse or make fun of the idols of the disbelievers in
order not to drive them away and in order that they not curse Allaah out of
ignorance. Instead they were told to reason with the disbelievers and show them
logically why the worship of idols was incorrect. Allaah quoted Prophet
Ibraaheem as saying to his people,
( ÇÏÏÈ öNä.•ŽÛØtƒ Ÿwur $\«ø‹x© öNà6ãèxÿZtƒ Ÿw $tB «!$# Âcrߊ `ÏB tšcr߉ç7÷ètGsùr& )
“Are you worshipping besides Allaah other gods which cannot benefit
you at all nor harm you?”14
The verse quoting Ibraaheem’s declaration of enmity to his people and what they
worshipped instead of Allaah:
(#qä9$s% øŒÎ) ÿ¼çmyètB tûïÏ%©!$#ur zOŠÏdºt•ö/Î) þ’Îû ×puZ|¡ym îouqó™é& öNä3s9 ôMtR%x. ô‰s% )
ö/ä3Î/ $tRö•xÿx. «!$# Èbrߊ `ÏB tbr߉ç7÷ès? $£JÏBur öNä3ZÏB (#ätÂuät•ç/ $¯RÎ) öNÍhÏBöqs)Ï9
( ÿçny‰ômur
14
Soorah al-Ambiyaa’ (21):66.
15
Soorah al-Mumtahinah (60:4).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
was revealed in Madeenah, after the Muslims had practiced years of patient
argument with their relatives in Makkah. The disbelievers of Makkah had met
reasoned argument with persecution and violence. They had driven the Muslims
from their homes, and a state of armed conflict existed between the two sides. It is
not, therefore, Sunnah for a person to accept Islaam, read this verse and try to
apply it on his family and acquaintances.
3. Seerah:
Most of the most important events in the Prophet’s life have been recorded in
various verses of the Qur’aan. Thus, by knowing the order in which the verses
were revealed, it is possible to piece together a large portion of the biography of
the Prophet (r).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
12
_________________________
D ivine laws were revealed by Allaah to His messengers for the purpose of
correcting man’s beliefs about God (‘aqeedah), his methods of worshipping
God (‘ibaadah), and his social life or social conduct (mu‘aamalah). Since
there is only one correct belief about God, tawheed, whereby Allaah is considered
as One, without partner in His essence, His attributes, His actions, and right of
worship, all of the prophets invited mankind to that belief in exactly the same
way. Allaah confirmed this fact to Prophet Muhammad (r) in the Qur’aan,
stating,
HwÎ) tm»s9Î) Iw ¼çm¯Rr& Ïmø‹s9Î) ûÓÇrqçR žwÎ) @Aqß™§‘ `ÏB š•Î=ö6s% `ÏB $uZù=y™ö‘r& !$tBur )
“And, verily, I have not sent any prophet before you without revealing
to him that there is no God besides Me, so worship Me.”16
However, in the case of methods of worship and social conduct, the same format
was not used in all cases. It is true that principles of worship and social conduct
were all aimed at purification of the soul, protection of society, and tying
communities together with bonds of cooperation and brotherhood, but the needs
of each nation or people were different. The needs may even vary from time to
16
Soorah al-Ambiyaa’ (21):25.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
time within the same nation. Thus, what may suit a people in one age may not
suit them in another. Also, what can be suitably used by a prophet to call the
people at the beginning of his prophethood may be inappropriate in the later
stages, when Allaah’s message has been established in the land and a state based
on divine law has come into being. Thus, the wisdom behind the various laws
takes all of these factors into account, for there is no doubt about Allaah’s all-
encompassing mercy and knowledge. It is His right to command and forbid us, as
He has informed us:
Therefore, it should not in any way seem strange that Allaah may replace a divine
law with another based on His knowledge of all things, past, present and future.
This replacement of a divine law by another divine law is referred to in Arabic-
Islaamic terminology as “ naskh.” Allaah referred to the existence of this process
as follows:
!$yJ¯RÎ) (#þqä9$s% ãAÍi”t\ム$yJÎ/ ÞOn=ôãr& ª!$#ur 7ptƒ#uä šc%x6¨B Zptƒ#uä !$oYø9£‰t/ #sŒÎ)ur )
( !$ygÎ=÷WÏB ÷rr& !$pk÷]ÏiB 9Žö•sƒ¿2 ÏNù'tR $ygÅ¡YçR ÷rr& >ptƒ#uä ô`ÏB ô‡|¡YtR $tB )
17
Soorah al-Ambiyaa’ (21):23.
18
Soorah an-Nahl (16):101.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
For naskh to have taken place, the following three conditions must have been
fulfilled:
1. The law which has been replaced has to have been a divine law. This means
that the gradual prohibition of alcohol would not be classified as naskh,
because each successive verse only expanded the prohibitive scope of the
previous verse. The original behavior of the people was to act as if alcohol was
lawful. It was their assumption that alcohol was permissible that was gradually
abolished by the three verses on this subject, not any previous statement by
Allaah that liquor was permissible.
2. The proof used to replace the old law has to be a divine command which was
revealed after the revelation of the old law.
3. The law which is to be replaced cannot have a specific time limit attached to it
from the time of its revelation. If it has a limited time period, it simply
becomes void when the time period ends, and such a process is not considered
as naskh. For instance, fasting is required daily until sunset during Ramadaan.
The permission to eat at night during Ramadaan or, after it is over, by day or
night, doesn’t involve naskh. 20
19
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):106.
20
These conditions can be found in virtually any book of usool al-fiqh. See, for example, Sharh
al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 3, pp. 526-7.
21
One should note, however, that sometimes orders occur in the Qur’aan in the format of a
statement. Cf. 2:125, 2:228, 2:233, 3:97.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
are all excluded from the category of naskh. Likewise, the divine promises and
warnings are excluded, because Allaah doesn’t break His promises. Nor could one
call it naskh if Allaah promises the believers gardens in paradise in an early verse
and in a later verse promises them the pleasure of seeing Him. The promise of
gardens has not been replaced by the promise of seeing Allaah; rather, both will
happen.22 It should also be noted that the underlying principles of worship and
moral behavior have not changed through the ages. Salaah, fasting, charity and
pilgrim-age have been constant practices of Allaah’s religion—no matter which
prophet was delivering the message—and lying, murder, adultery, cheating, etc.
have been condemned by all the prophets. Therefore, the area in which naskh
operates is in details of the format of a religious practice or a social law, not in the
core principles.
KNOWLEDGE OF NASKH
1. A clearly worded narration from the Prophet (r) or one of his companions
(sahaabee). For example, the Prophet (r) was reported to have said,
22
See Sharh al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 3, pp. 543.
23
Quoted by as-Suyootee in al-Itqaan, vol. 3, p. 59.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“ I used to forbid you from visiting graves, but (now) you should visit them, as
surely they are reminders (of the next life).” 24
One of the sahaabah by the name of Salamah ibn al-Akwa‘ reported that when
the verse,
“And the redemption for those who have difficulty with (fasting) is the
feeding of a poor person,”25
was revealed, whoever wanted to stop fasting would redeem himself, until the
verse after it26 was revealed and replaced it:
“Whoever among you who witnesses the (beginning of) the month
should fast (the month).”27
2. The unanimous agreement of early Muslim scholars on both the law which was
replaced and the one which replaced it. That is, their recognition of the fact that
an abrogation took place and not their agreement to abrogate a divine law. An
example of this can be found in a hadeeth wherein the Prophet (r) said,
24
Reported by Buraydah and collected by Muslim (Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, pp. 463-4, no. 2131),
Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 2, p. 919, no. 3229), an-Nasaa’ee and Ahmad.
25
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):184.
26
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):185.
27
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 27, no. 34) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim,
vol. 2, p. 555, nos. 2547-8). It should be borne in mind that the sahaabah used the word naskh for
a broader category of changes to an existing law than the word came to mean among scholars of
later generations. For the sahaabah, naskh included takhsees (specification) as well as complete
abrogation. Therefore, the general permission for anyone who cared to feed a poor person instead
of fasting was cancelled. However, the permission still stands for the aged and the chronically ill,
as Ibn ‘Abbaas noted in Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 26-7, no. 32.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
ﹶﺔﺍﺒِﻌ ﺍﻟﺭﺎﺩ ﻋ ﻓﹶﺈِﻥﻭﻩﻠِﺩ ﻓﹶﺎﺠﺎﺩ ﻋ ﻓﹶﺈِﻥﻭﻩﻠِﺩ ﻓﹶﺎﺠﺎﺩ ﻋ ﻓﹶﺈِﻥﻭﻩﻠِﺩ ﻓﹶﺎﺠﺭ ﺍﻟﹾﺨﹶﻤ ﺸﹶﺭِﺏﻥ) ﻤ
(. ﻓﹶﺎﻗﹾﺘﹸﻠﹸﻭﻩ
“ Whip whoever takes intoxicants (each time he is caught) and on the fourth time
kill him.” 28
The sahaabah were unanimous on the fact that the one who took intoxicants was
no longer to be executed. They did not repeal the law by unanimous agreement
(ijmaa‘), but the law was not applied because it was known to all of them that the
Prophet (r) repealed it.29
3. Reliable historical knowledge of a law being put into practice during an earlier
historical period, then a later law appears to clearly contradict it. For example,
Shaddaad ibn Aws reported that at the time of the conquest of Makkah (8AH/630
CE), the Prophet (r) said,
28
Collected by Ahmad and by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 3, pp. 1252-3, nos. 4467-
70) and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood, vol. 3, p. 848, nos. 3763-4.
29
The consensus on this issue was reported by at-Tirmithee in his book al-‘Ilal. See Sunan Abu
Dawud, vol. 3, p. 1252, footnote no. 3903.
30
Cupping is a practice of drawing blood to the surface of the skin by making an incision and
creating a vacuum at the point. It is done for medicinal purposes.
31
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 2, p. 650, no. 2363), at-Tirmithee, Ibn
Maajah and Ahmad, and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood, vol. 2, p.
451, no. 2075.
32
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 3, p. 91, no. 159.
33
See Fat-h al-Baaree, vol. 4, p. 210.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
TYPES OF NASKH
There are basically four different types of naskh which can take place
between the two sources of divine law, the Qur’aan and the Sunnah.
The first is the naskh of the Qur’aan by the Qur’aan. In this type of naskh, a
Qur’aanic verse containing a law is superseded by another Qur’aanic verse
containing a new law. An example can be found in the verses on immoral
women. The early law was stated in the Qur’aan as follows:
“And for those of your women who have illicit relations, seek four
witnesses among you. If they bear witness, confine the women in
houses until they die or until Allaah makes another way for them.”34
This law was abolished and replaced by the following law of lashing:
“Lash both the fornicator and the fornicatress one hundred times
each.”35
The second type is naskh of the Qur’aan by the Sunnah. There is controversy
as to whether this category exists. Those who affirm it give as an example of it the
verse on wills, wherein Allaah instructs the believers as follows:
34
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):15.
35
Soorah an-Noor (24):2.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
èp§‹Ï¹uqø9$# #·Žö•yz x8t•s? bÎ) ßNöqyJø9$# ãNä.y‰tnr& uŽ|Øym #sŒÎ) öNä3ø‹n=tæ |=ÏGä. )
“It is prescribed for each of you to have a bequest for your parents
and relatives if any of you nears death and leaves wealth.”36
This early law was replaced by the inheritance laws and repealed by the hadeeth
in which the Prophet (r) said,
“ Verily Allaah has given every one with a right his rightful (share in the
inheritance) so there is no bequest for one who inherits.” 37
The third is the naskh of the Sunnah by the Qur’aan; that is, the abolition and
replacement of an Islaamic law which the Prophet (r) taught by the law in a verse
revealed in the Qur’aan. An example of this type of naskh is when prayer in the
direction of Jerusalem was abolished. Muslims prayed towards Jerusalem,
following the example of the Prophet (r) until they emigrated to Madeenah. After
their settling in Madeenah, Allaah revealed the verse,
( çnt•ôÜx© öNä3ydqã_ãr
36
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):180.
37
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 2, p. 808, no. 2864) an-Nasaa’ee, at-
Tirmithee, Ibn Maajah and Ahmad, and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee
Daawood , vol. 2, p. 554, no. 2493. It should be noted that the majority of scholars consider this
hadeeth to clarify the verses about inheritance in Soorah an-Nisaa’. Therefore, in their view, the
naskh was accomplished by the Qur’aanic verses, not the hadeeth. Their reasoning is that the
Qur’aan’s authenticity is established by mutawaatir transmission, whereas the hadeeth’s
authenticity was established by a few chains of transmission, which makes it strong enough to
explain the verses of Soorah an-Nisaa’, but not strong enough to abrogate a Qur’aanic verse by
itself. See Sharh al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 3, p. 529.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The Prophet’s wife ‘Aa’ishah also reported that the fasting of ‘Aashooraa’ (the
10th of the month of Muharram) used to be compulsory until the verses of
Ramadaan were revealed. After that, whoever wished to fast ‘Aashooraa’ did
so.39 When the Prophet (r) migrated to Madeenah, he found the Jews fasting on
that day in commemoration of Prophet Moosaa’s deliverance from Pharaoh in
Egypt. The Prophet (r), under divine guidance, ordered the Muslims to do so
also, but no Qur’aanic revelation was revealed concerning it. However, during the
second year after the Hijrah, Allaah revealed the following verse,
The fourth type of naskh is that of the Sunnah by the Sunnah. This type of naskh
involves the annulment of a law found only in the Sunnah of the Prophet (r) by a
later law expressed in the Sunnah. An example of this type of naskh can be found
in the following statement of the sahaabee Jaabir ibn ‘Abdullaah: “ The latter of
the Messenger of Allaah’s (r) two commands was to not make wudoo’ after
(eating) things touched by fire.” 41 In the early period of Islaam, the Prophet (r)
had commanded his followers to make wudoo’ before praying if they had eaten
38
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):144. See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 14, no. 13, for the circumstances of
the revelation.
39
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 24, no. 29) and Muslim (Sahih Muslim,
vol. 2, pp. 548-9, nos. 2499-503).
40
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):185.
41
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 1, pp. 46-7, no. 192), at-Tirmithee, an-
Nasaa’ee and Ibn Maajah and authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood, vol.
1, p. 39, no. 177.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
cooked food, but in the later period he told them that it was no longer necessary to
do so.
The naskh of either the Qur’aan or the Sunnah by ijmaa‘ (unanimous
agreement of the scholars) or qiyaas (analogous deduction) cannot occur, as
neither ijmaa‘ or qiyaas are of divine origin. Both ijmaa‘ and qiyaas are the result
of human intellectual effort, therefore, their conclusions are subject to error. So
even though ijmaa‘ and qiyaas are considered to be two of the sources of Islaamic
law (fiqh), they are not considered to be a part of Sharee‘ah (divine law).
However, they may be used when applying the Sharee‘ah to circumstances not
specified in the Qur’aan or Sunnah.42
Within the Qur’aan itself, naskh may occur in three different forms in relation
to the recitation of the abrogated verse and validity of the abrogated law contained
in the verse.
42
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, pp. 150-1.
43
Sahih Muslim, vol. 2, p. 740, no. 3421.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“For those among you who die and leave behind wives, the bequest
instruction for your wives is that they be looked after (from your
wealth) for a year without being expelled (from their dwellings).”46
( #ZŽô³tãur 9•åkô-r&
44
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 3, p. 912, no. 4194, and Ibn Maajah. The wording of the verse is
reported by Ibn Maajah, however this hadeeth has not yet been translated. (See Mawsoo‘ah al-
Hadeeth ash-Shareef, Ibn Maajah, The Book of Hudood, no. 2543.)
45
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 3, pp. 911-922, nos. 4191-4225.
46
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):240.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“For those among you who die and leave behind wives, let them (the
wives) stay by themselves for four months and ten days (i.e., without
remarrying).”47
When a law was repealed, it was replaced by another law or not replaced at
all. In the cases when it was replaced, the new law may either be less difficult, of
similar difficulty, or more difficult. Thus, there are exactly four ways in which a
law may be annulled with respect to its replacement.
( Zps%y‰|¹ óOä31uqøgwU
47
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):234. It should be noted that although verse 240 follows verse 234
numerically, verse 234 was revealed after verse 240. However, the Prophet (r), under divine
guidance, had the order changed when it was recorded and recited. See Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, p.
40, no. 53.
48
Soorah al-Mujaadilah (58):12.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
(#qè=yèøÿs? óOs9 øŒÎ*sù 4 ;M»s%y‰|¹ óOä31uqøgwU ô“y‰tƒ tû÷üt/ (#qãBÏd‰s)è? br& ÷Läêø)xÿô©r&uä )
( ã&s!qß™u‘ur
“O you who believe: Fasting has been made com-pulsory for you in
the same way that it was made for those before you,”50
food, drink, and intercourse were forbidden to them once they prayed the night
prayer or went to sleep until the next sunset. Then Allaah revealed the verse,
49
Soorah al-Mujaadilah (58):13
50
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):183.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Going to your women at night has been made lawful for you during
the period of fasting.”51
( çnt•ôÜx© öNä3ydqã_ãr
“So turn your face toward al-Masjid al-Haraam, and wherever you all
may be, turn your faces toward it.”52
There is no doubt that the replacement of some laws with others was done for
good and important reasons, as none of Allaah’s action are in jest or without a
purpose. Some of these reasons He has described, and others are obvious and
deducible from His actions; however, there are others unknown to us and beyond
our comprehension. Allaah’s being is unknown to us and beyond our
comprehension. Allaah’s knowledge has no limits and includes all, so man cannot
reasonably hope to grasp in totality the supreme wisdom behind Allaah’s actions.
51
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):187. This report was collected by Ibn Abee Haatim. See also Sahih Al-
Bukhari, vol. 6, p. 28, no. 35.
52
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):144. See “Naskh of the Sunnah by the Qur’aan” on p. 226.
53
See number 1 under “Knowledge of Naskh” on p. 221.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
In the case of naskh, it is possible to deduce the following principle reasons for it
occurrence:
54
Al-Qur’aan al-Kareem (Arabic CD) under ma‘loomaat—maktabah al-Qur’aan.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
13
_________________________
“A Book whose verses have been made clear, an Arabic reading for a
people who are aware.”1
Hence, the foundations for the unity of the Muslim nation (Ummah) are firmly
laid down by the essential verses of the Qur’aan itself. These verses and the
principles which they contain have been referred to as the muhkamaat.
However, since the Qur’aan addresses the mysteries of man and his world,
there are, of necessity, vague and obscure references to aspects of realities about
which man’s knowledge is limited. Some of these references may only be
understood in relationship to other verses, while the reality of other references
cannot be understood at all. For example, the letters of the alphabet with which
1
Soorah Fussilat, (41):3.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
It has been shown that the Arabic letter Qaaf occurs more frequently in this
soorah than any other letter of the Arabic alphabet. Also, the ratio of Qaafs to the
total number of letters in this soorah is higher than in any of the other one
hundred and thirteen soorahs of the Qur’aan.
However, the intended meaning of the letter Qaaf is unknown. Some
commentators of the Qur’aan have speculated that it is abbreviation for the word
“Qur’aan,” while others have proposed that it represents the phrase, “ qudiyal-
amr,” (“the matter has been destined”). Since the last Prophet, Muhammad (r), to
whom the Qur’aan was revealed, did not explain its meaning, and the grammatical
context in which it is used does not indicate any obvious meaning, we can only
honestly say that Allaah alone knows its reality.
2
Mentioned by Ibn Faaris, and quoted in Min ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 136.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Another example in relation to man himself is that of the rooh (soul). Its
existence is confirmed by revelation, as well as human experience, but its reality
is unknown to man. Allaah, in the Qur’aan, points out its origin for us, saying,
“They ask you about the rooh; tell them, ‘The rooh comes from my
Lord’s command.’ ”3
Hence, we know that the soul is created, but as to what it is created from, Allaah
alone knows. We know other things about it, like the fact that an angel is
responsible for placing it in the fetus at the beginning of the fifth month of its
development, and another angel is responsible for extracting it from the human
body when its appointed time of death has arrived, etc.4 But how it was created,
its form, its place in the body, or how it is connected to the body is not part of our
knowledge.
In relation to man and his world, an example can be found in the references to
the next life and the final hour. Fruits and drinks of paradise and Hell are
mentioned by name, but as Ibn ‘Abbaas (r) explained, only the names are
similar; their realities are totally different.5 Allaah Himself indicates that by
mentioning some of their unique qualities, such as rivers of flowing milk that
never sours or wine that does not intoxicate, a scale that weighs deeds and the
skins of those doomed to the Fire, which grow back again as soon as the fire has
burnt them.
Similarly, knowledge of the appointed time for the end of this world is
unknown. Although many of the signs have been mentioned in the Qur’aan and
Sunnah, and the process of disintegration has been vividly described, the exact
time of its occurrence is completely hidden from man. Hence, Qur’aanic
references to the Final Hour and the components of the next life are always vague.
The Qur’aanic verses that speak on the mysteries of creation and the Creator
in such a way that their reality remains obscure are referred to as the
3
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):85.
4
See Qur’aan 32:11 and Sahih Muslim, vol. 4, pp. 1391-3, nos. 6390-7.
5
Collected by Ibn Abee Haatim and Ibn Jareer. See Tafseer Ibn Katheer , vol. 1, p. 66.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ÇÊÈ AŽ•Î7yz AOŠÅ3ym ÷bà$©! `ÏB ôMn=Å_Áèù §NèO ¼çmçG»tƒ#uä ôMyJÅ3ômé& ë=»tGÏ. 4 •!9# )
“Alif, Laam, Raa. A Book from the Wise and Aware (Allaah), whose
verses were made muhkam, then explained.”6
“Allaah has revealed the best speech (in the form of) a mutashaabih
book repeating (its message).”7
That is, all of the verses of the Qur’aan resemble each other in their rhythmic and
poetic perfection, and they all mutually confirm each other’s meanings.
However, the specific meanings of these two terms play a very important role
in the science of tafseer . Those meanings are contained in the following verse,
along with a very stern warning:
6
Soorah Hood (11):1.
7
Soorah az-Zumar (39):23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
‘Pé& £`èd ìM»yJs3øt’C ×M»tƒ#uä çm÷ZÏB |=»tGÅ3ø9$# y7ø‹n=tã tAt“Rr& ü“Ï%©!$# uqèd )
$tB tbqãèÎ6®KuŠsù Ô÷÷ƒy— óOÎgÎ/qè=è% ’Îû tûïÏ%©!$# $¨Br'sù ( ×M»ygÎ7»t±tFãB ã•yzé&ur É=»tGÅ3ø9$#
3 ª!$# žwÎ) ÿ¼ã&s#ƒÍrù's? ãNn=÷ètƒ $tBur 3 ¾Ï&Î#ƒÍrù's? uä!$tóÏGö/$#ur ÏpuZ÷GÏÿø9$# uä!$tóÏGö/$# çm÷ZÏB tmt7»t±s?
$tBur 3 $uZÎn/u‘ ωZÏã ô`ÏiB @@ä. ¾ÏmÎ/ $¨ZtB#uä tbqä9qà)tƒ ÉOù=Ïèø9$# ’Îû tbqã‚Å™º§•9$#ur
Hence, the muhkam could be defined as those verses whose meanings are clear,
and the mutashaabih as those verses whose inner meanings are known only to
Allaah. ‘Aa’ishah reported that once the Prophet (r) recited the above
mentioned verse and said,
(. ﻡﻭﻫﺫﹶﺭ ﻓﹶﺎﺤﻰ ﺍﻟﻠﱠﻪﻤ ﺴ ﻓﹶﺄُﻭﻟﹶﺌِﻙِ ﺍﻟﱠﺫِﻴﻥ ﻤِﻨﹾﻪﻪﺎ ﺘﹶﺸﹶﺎﺒ ﻤﻭﻥﺘﱠﺒِﻌ ﻴﺕِ ﺍﻟﱠﺫِﻴﻥﺃَﻴ) ﻓﹶﺈِﺫﹶﺍ ﺭ
“ If you meet those who seek out the obscure verses (mutashaabih), they are the
ones whom Allaah has named in the Qur’aan, so beware of them.” 9
The concepts of muhkam and mutashaabih provide a set of guidelines by
which the Qur’aan should be understood. The system of fiqh (Islaamic law) has
8
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):7.
9
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 6, pp. 53-4, no. 70) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 4, p. 1402, no. 6442).
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
evolved from the muhkamaat verses. The early scholars concentrated on those
verses which had direct relevance to human actions, the verses which could be
applied and interpreted according to logical and universally acceptable
grammatical principles. However, those who sought to destroy the message of
Islaam from within began their attack at the very source, the Qur’aan. The
muhkamaat verses do not lend themselves to philosophical interpretations. Hence,
the mutashaabihaat became the pillars upon which counter-Islaam was built, and
Allaah’s names and attributes became the starting point. For example, Allaah
describes Himself in Qur’aan as al-Baseer, the Seer, and as-Samee‘, the Hearer,
among His many names and attributes. During the era of the Prophet (r) and
that of the four Righteous Caliphs after his death, the sahaabah understood the
verses containing these attributes according to their obvious meanings without
delving into the why and the hows. To them, Allaah sees and hears all things
without resembling His creation in any way. However, after the era of the
sahaabah, the argument was raised by some that seeing and hearing were human
or animal characteristics which required particular sensory apparatuses not
befitting the Lord God Almighty. He had already said in the Qur’aan that:
10
Soorah ash-Shooraa (42):11.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
termed the baatin or the haqeeqah. Some claimed that the inner meanings were
handed down secretly through the Prophet’s descendants, whom they named
imaams, while others claimed that they were passed down through a chain of
shaykhs or spiritual leaders.
Fortunately, the Qur’aanic description of this trend as being a result of
twisted hearts and deviation and the Prophet’s warning to the Muslim Ummah to
avoid those who take this path aid us in continuing to hold high the essential
purity and clarity of the Qur’aanic message contained in the muhkamaat verses.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
14
_________________________
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 10
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
musarrah mathal (stated), the kaamin mathal (hidden), and the mursal mathal
(formless).11
|=ydsŒ ¼ã&s!öqym $tB ôNuä!$|Êr& !$£Jn=sù #Y‘$tR y‰s%öqtGó™$# “Ï%©!$# È@sVyJx. öNßgè=sVtB )
Ò‘ôJãã íNõ3ç/ BL༠ÇÊÐÈ tbrçŽÅÇö6ムžw ;M»yJè=àß ’Îû öNßgx.t•s?ur öNÏdÍ‘qãZÎ/ ª!$#
Ó‰ôãu‘ur ×M»uKè=àß ÏmŠÏù Ïä!$yJ¡¡9$# z`ÏiB 5=ÍhŠ|Áx. ÷rr& ÇÊÑÈ tbqãèÅ_ö•tƒ Ÿw öNßgsù
ª!$#ur 4 ÏNöqyJø9$# u‘x‹tn È,Ïãºuq¢Á9$# z`ÏiB NÍkÍX#sŒ#uä þ’Îû ÷LàiyèÎ6»|¹r& tbqè=yèøgs† ×-ö•t/ur
|=yds%s! ª!$# uä!$x© öqs9ur 4 (#qãB$s% öNÍköŽn=tæ zNn=øßr& !#sŒÎ)ur ÏmŠÏù (#öqt±¨B Nßgs9
“They are like one who kindles a fire; then when it lights up what is
around him, Allaah takes away his light and leaves him in total
darkness in which he cannot see (anything). They are deaf, dumb, and
blind; hence, they will never return to the path. Or like a dark rain
cloud, thundering and flashing lightning in the sky, (during which)
they stick their fingers in their ears from the thunderclap, fearing
death. But Allaah surrounds the disbelievers. The lightning almost
11
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 293.
12
Al-Itqaan, vol.4, p. 39.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 11
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
snatches away their sight, but every time it lights up (the area) for
them, they walk, and when it becomes dark, they stand still. If Allaah
had willed, He could have taken away their hearing and sight, for
certainly Allaah is able to do all things.”13
Fire is used in this passage due to its quality of light, and water is used due to its
ability to bring earth back to life. Fire and water really represent the elements.
Revelation was sent down from the heavens to enlighten human hearts and bring
them to life. In these verses, Allaah uses fire and water to explain the effect of
revelation on those who pretend to be Muslims. The hypocrites who enter Islaam
so as to benefit from it materially are like someone who lights a fire in order to
benefit from its warmth and light. However, their entrance into Islaam has no
enlightening effect on their hearts; likewise, Allaah removes the quality of light
from the fire leaving only its quality of heat. Hence, they are in total darkness,
blind, unable to see the truth. The hypocrites are also like someone in a rainstorm
fearing death from its flashes of lightning and trying to avoid its mind-shattering
thunderclap. Instead of coming to life spiritually when God’s word is revealed to
them, the hypocrites try to block out its thundering commands and prohibitions,
fearing that submission to them would mean the death of their souls and egos.
Another mathal involving fire and water can be found in the following verse
concerning truth and falsehood.
÷rr& >pu‹ù=Ïm uä!$tóÏGö/$# Í‘$¨Z9$# ’Îû Ïmø‹n=tã tbr߉Ï%qム$£JÏBur 4 $\ŠÎ/#§‘ #Y‰t/y— ã@ø‹¡¡9$#
߉t/¨“9$# $¨Br'sù 4 Ÿ@ÏÜ»t7ø9$#ur ¨,ysø9$# ª!$# Ü>ÎŽôØo„ y7Ï9ºx‹x. 4 ¼ã&é#÷WÏiB Ó‰t/y— 8ì»tFtB
y7Ï9ºx‹x. 4 ÇÚö‘F{$# ’Îû ß]ä3ôJu‹sù }¨$¨Z9$# ßìxÿZtƒ $tB $¨Br&ur ( [ä!$xÿã_ Ü=ydõ‹uŠsù
13
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):17-20.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 12
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“He sends down water from the skies which flows in valleys according
to their capacities, and the flood carries swelling froth on its surface;
there is a similar froth in the (ore) which they heat in the fire in order
to make ornaments or implements. In this way, Allaah makes a
comparison between truth and falsehood. For the froth is thrown
away and disappears, while that which is beneficial to man remains on
earth. In this way, Allaah makes parables.”14
Once again, revelation, which is sent down to bring hearts to life, is likened to
water coming down to bring the earth to life with plants. Human hearts are the
metaphorical valleys of varying sizes in which the flood of revelation flows
accordingly. As the physical flood carries the froth and scum of the earth in its
currents, so guidance and knowledge flow upon the hearts to wash away base
desires. Hearts are then likened to different types of ore, such as gold, silver, iron,
copper, etc., which are purified by the heat of the fire. Impurities rise to the
surface in the form of froth and scum which are discarded, leaving the pure metal
behind. Likewise, when the hearts of believers are exposed to the heat and light of
revelation, evil desires are cast off and the hearts are purified.
In both of the examples given above, the comparison between both fire and
revelation and water and revelation is obvious. The comparative preposition
“like” and the words “comparison, parable, simile” are all mentioned, leaving no
doubt as to the intent of the passages.
14
Soorah ar-Ra‘d (13):17.
15
Al-Itqaan, vol.4, p. 41.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 13
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
š•Ï9ºsŒ šú÷üt/ tb%Ÿ2ur (#rçŽäIø)tƒ öNs9ur (#qèùÌ•ó¡ç„ öNs9 (#qà)xÿRr& !#sŒÎ) tûïÏ%©!$#ur )
( ÇÏÐÈ $YB#uqs%
“Who are neither extravagant nor stingy when they spend; but
between that is a just stand.”16
And in the case of salaah, Allaah advises:
( ÇÊÊÉÈ Wx‹Î6y™ y7Ï9ºsŒ tû÷üt/ Æ÷tFö/$#ur $pkÍ5 ôMÏù$sƒéB Ÿwur y7Ï?Ÿx|ÁÎ/ ö•ygøgrB Ÿwur )
“Do not be loud voiced nor extremely soft in your salaah, but seek a
path between them.”17
“Do you not believe?” He replied, “Of course (I believe), but (seeing)
would put my heart at rest.”18
16
Soorah al-Furqaan (25):67.
17
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):110.
18
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):260.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 14
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
This form covers short verses which convey lessons, many of which have
become proverbs. Like the mathal kaamin, it has none of the expressions or
similes; however, comparisons may be made or implied.19 The following verses
clearly illustrate this type of mathal:
“You think they are united, but their hearts are scattered.”24
19
Al-Itqaan, vol. 4, p. 43.
20
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):216.
21
Soorah ar-Rahmaan (55):60.
22
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):100.
23
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):249.
24
Soorah al-Hashr (59):14.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 15
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The benefits gained from the use of the mathal in the Qur’aan are
numerous.25 Intangible concepts are presented in a tangible format in order for
them to be more easily grasped and retained. Concepts which may be quite
difficult to grasp on a theoretical basis become quickly and easily comprehensible
when put in the terms of everyday human experiences or processes in nature. For
example, the idea that one who gives money for show gains no reward is tangibly
brought across by the following simile:
“They are like a rock covered with some earth which is struck by a
rainstorm, leaving it bare. They are unable to do anything with (the
wealth) they have earned.”26
ôMtFu;/Rr& >p¬6ym È@sVyJx. «!$# È@‹Î6y™ ’Îû óOßgs9ºuqøBr& tbqà)ÏÿZムtûïÏ%©!$# ã@sW¨B )
( âä!$t±o„ `yJÏ9 ß#Ï軟Òムª!$#ur 3 7p¬6ym èps•($ÏiB 7's#ç7/Yß™ Èe@ä. ’Îû Ÿ@Î/$uZy™ yìö7y™
25
See Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, pp. 297-9.
26
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):264.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 16
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Those who spend their wealth in Allaah’s path are like a corn seed
which sprouts seven ears, each ear containing one hundred seeds.
Allaah multiplies (the gifts) of whomsoever He wishes.”27
At other times, the mathal is used to discourage certain evil practices by
comparing them to distasteful things. For example, Allaah said the following
concerning backbiting:
“Do not backbite each other. Would anyone of you wish to eat the
flesh of his dead brother? You detest it...”28
The revulsion we all feel at the thought of eating the flesh of our dead brother
should be felt when we hear slander or backbiting.
The mathal may also be used to praise certain types of individuals or
disgrace and debase others in order to set up certain standards of acceptable
behavior. Figurative speech is generally a more moving and effective method of
communica-tion than direct commands and detailed explanations. Hence, Allaah
has used them frequently in the Qur’aan:
öNßg¯=yè©9 9@sWtB Èe@ä. `ÏB Èb#uäö•à)ø9$# #x‹»yd ’Îû Ĩ$¨Y=Ï9 $oYö/uŽŸÑ ô‰s)s9ur )
( ÇËÐÈ tbrã•©.x‹tGtƒ
27
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):261.
28
Soorah al-Hujuraat (49):12.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 17
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
THE QASAM
The phrase, “I swear by” (aqsimu bi) is often reduced to the particle “by” (“bi”),
and “ ta” and “ wa” are often used in place of “ bi.” These particles are then joined
to the person or thing by which the oath is taken. Hence the oath, “I swear by
Allaah,” may be expressed in Arabic as, “ Aqsimu bil-laah,” “ bil-laah,” “ tal-
laah,” or “ wal-laah.” Occasionally both the verb, the particle, and the person or
thing by which the oath is taken are all deleted, leaving only the person, thing, or
event on which the oath is taken, prefixed with la, a particle of emphasis. An
example of this type of deletion can be found in the verse,
29
Soorah az-Zumar (39):27.
30
They are too numerous to begin to list, but just as a tiny sample, refer to the simile of the people
who observe the limits set by Allaah and those who don’t as people on the upper and lower decks
of a ship (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 3, p. 406, no. 673). See also Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, p. 278, no.
468, for a simile of the believers as a structure whose bricks support each other.
31
Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan, p. 300.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 18
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
This verse should read, “[By Allaah,] you will certainly be tested.” In the
Qur’aan, the vast majority of oaths are made by created things; for example,
“By the Sun and the early morn, by the moon when it follows it.”33
However, there are exactly seven places where oaths are made by Allaah. 34 Allaah
commands the Prophet (r) to swear by Allaah in three of those places, as in the
following example:
¨bàs¬7t^çGs9 §NèO £`èVyèö6çGs9 ’În1u‘ur 4’n?t/ ö@è% 4 (#qèVyèö7ム`©9 br& (#ÿrã•xÿx. tûïÏ%©!$# zNtãy— )
( ÷Läêù=ÏHxå $yJÎ/
“Those who disbelieve claim that they will never be resurrected. Say,
‘Certainly, by my Lord, you will be resurrected, then you will be
informed of what you did.’ ”35
In the remaining four instances, Allaah swears by Himself, as in the following
example:
32
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):186.
33
Soorah ash-Shams (91):1-2.
34
Al-Itqaan, vol. 4, p. 46.
35
Soorah at-Taghaabun (64):7.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 19
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“By your Lord, they will not truly believe until they make you the
judge in their disputes.”36
Allaah, being the creator of all things may swear by whatever he wishes;
however, man is not allowed to swear by anything but Allaah. The reason being
that oaths are taken by the things which one holds in the highest of esteem and
only Allaah should be revered in this manner. Hence, oaths by the stars, by one’s
father’s grave or even by the Prophet (r) or by the Ka‘bah are all forbidden and
considered shirk (associating partners with Allaah). The Righteous Caliph and
close companion of the Prophet (r), ‘Umar ibn al-Khattaab, reported that
Allaah’s Messenger (r) said,
36
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):65.
37
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 2, p. 923, no. 3245) and at-Tirmithee and
authenticated by al-Albaanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood, vol. 2, p. 627, no. 2787.
38
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):1-2.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 20
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Does the human being think that I will never gather his bones back
together?”39
indicate that the missing events on which the oaths were taken are, “you will be
resurrected and judged.” This type of deletion in Arabic is used to dramatically
increase the effect of the passage, much in the same way that warnings are orally
expressed in English; for example, “You had better stop doing that, or else!”
Consequently, Allaah ordered the Prophet (r) to enter into debates with the
pagans, but only in a gentle way which might move their hearts:
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 21
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Call to the path of your Lord with wisdom and good admonishment
and debate with them in the best way.”41
He also allowed Muslims to have discussions with the Christians and Jews in
order to bring the truth to light:
“Only debate in the best manner with the people who follow revealed
books.”42
Since the Qur’aan addresses man, it is only natural that this aspect of human
nature be taken into account when topics are presented. Hence, numerous
examples of debate (jadal) can be found throughout the Qur’aan. However, the
arguments raised in the Qur’aan are very simple and easily understood, as they
always rely in one way or another on observable facts to prove the unobservable.
The following are a few types of arguments found in the Qur’aan:
“If there were in the (heavens and earth) gods beside Allaah, they
would be ruined.”43
There would be no order and harmony to this world if it had two or more true
creators. For if they differed on how any aspect of creation should be, there would
41
Soorah an-Nahl (16):125.
42
Soorah al-‘Ankaboot (29):46.
43
Soorah al-Ambiyaa’ (21):22.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 22
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
be chaos unless they all agreed or they submitted to the decision of one of them.
Agreement or submission both imply an inability and weakness which no true
creator should possess. In fact, such descriptions of weakness reduce the Creator
of the universe to the status of a squabbling family of human beings in the way
that the Greeks, Romans, Hindus, and Egyptians, etc., imagined their gods to be.
%cÓÍ_¨B `ÏiB ZpxÿôÜçR à7tƒ óOs9r& ÇÌÏÈ “´‰ß™ x8uŽøIムbr& ß`»|¡RM}$# Ü=|¡øts†r& )
Èû÷üy_÷r¨“9$# çm÷ZÏB Ÿ@yèpgmú ÇÌÑÈ 3“§q|¡sù t,n=yÜsù Zps)n=tæ tb%x. §NèO ÇÌÐÈ 4Óo_ôJãƒ
( ÇÍÉÈ 4’tAöqpRùQ$# }‘Å¿øtä† br& #’n?tã A‘ω»s)Î/ y7Ï9ºsŒ }§øŠs9r& ÇÌÒÈ #Ós\RW{$#ur t•x.©%!$#
If one reflects on how humans are wondrously created and molded from such
lowly origins, there should be no difficulty in conceiving the re-creation and
resurrection of humanity. For the re-creation of a thing is always easier than its
initial creation, as Allaah explicitly stated:
44
The word manee is usually translated as sperm, but it can refer to the fluid of the female as well.
See Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 181-2, no. 614.
45
Soorah al-Qiyaamah (75):36-40.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 23
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
¾ÏmÏRrߊ `ÏB šcqããô‰tƒ $tB žcr&ur ‘,ysø9$# uqèd ©!$# cr'Î/ š•Ï9ºsŒ )
46
Soorah ar-Room (30):27.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 24
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
and,
tû÷üt/ $yJÏj9 $]%Ïd‰|ÁãB ‘,ysø9$# uqèd É=»tGÅ3ø9$# z`ÏB y7ø‹s9Î) !$uZøŠym÷rr& ü“Ï%©!$#ur )
( Ïm÷ƒy‰tƒ
“What I have revealed to you of the Book is the truth, confirming that which
preceded it.”49
And Allaah specifically states that the stories which He relates are true:
Likewise, Allaah repudiates the idea that these narratives are invented. At the end
of the story of Yoosuf and his brothers, He says,
47
Soorah al-Hajj (22):62.
48
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):48.
49
Soorah Faatir (35):31.
50
Soorah al-Qasas (28):3.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 25
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
$ZVƒÏ‰tn tb%x. $tB 3 É=»t6ø9F{$# ’Í<'rT[{ ×ouŽö9Ïã öNÎhÅÁ|Ás% ’Îû šc%x. ô‰s)s9 )
51
Soorah Yoosuf (12):111.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 26
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
15
_________________________
I slaamic laws and principles, like all laws, have certain general and specific
goals which they are designed to achieve. In order to achieve these goals, the
laws address society under a given set of circumstances. Sometimes the laws
are directed to all people of the society under all circumstances, sometimes to all
people under specific circumstances, at other times to particular people in special
situations, and at other times to particular people in all situations. Hence, the
language by which these laws are delivered has to accurately distinguish between
the various cases in order to avoid any confusion and misinterpretation. The
Arabic language in which the Qur’aan was conveyed has a number of words,
phrases and grammatical constructions which express the various shades of
meanings necessary to clarify the intent of the laws. Some of these expressions
will be briefly studied in this chapter in order to give the reader a glimpse of some
of the modes of expression.
52
An alternate definition is “a word which applies to many things, not limited in number, and
includes everything to which it is applicable.” (Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, p. 104.)
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 27
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
instance, if one were ordered to feed ten poor people, that expression would be
khaass.53
It should be noted that certain ‘aamm expressions are more comprehensive
than others. For instance, the category of men is a smaller category than the
category of human beings, which includes it. The category of human beings, in
turn, is smaller than the category of mammals, which is smaller than the category
of animals, and so on. 54 When an ‘aamm expression is qualified or restricted by
another more limited ‘aamm expression or a khaass expression, the process is
called takhsees, and the limiting expression is called the mukhassis of the broader
category.55
The following six examples contain the most commonly used general
expressions which can be found in the Qur’aan:56
1. Kull (all, every, or each): This word could be translated into English in a
variety of ways, depending on the context. An example of this word’s usage can
be found in Allaah’s statements in the Qur’aan:
These two verses confirm the fact that all things have a beginning point at which
they were created and every living soul must come to an end of its existence.
53
Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, pp. 104-5.
54
See Sharh al-Kawkab al-Muneer, vol. 3, p. 105.
55
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, p. 406.
56
See al-Itqaan, vol. 3, pp. 43-4.
57
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):185.
58
Soorah az-Zumar (39):62.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 28
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Allaah has made al-bay‘ (all trade) allowable and forbidden ar-ribaa
(all interest).”61
Hence, all forms of trade are considered valid unless they have been expressly
forbidden. Likewise, in the verse:
“Cut off the hand of as-saariq was-saariqah (every male and female
thief),”62
the Muslim community—and, more specifically, their rulers, who have been
delegated the responsibility of establishing justice and legal punishments—would
not be in compliance with this order until they cut the hand of every male and
female thief.
59
Genesis 14:18-20.
60
Hebrews 7:3.
61
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):275.
62
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):38.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 29
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“So no rafath (a vulgar word), fusooq (an obscenity), and no jidaal (an
argument) during hajj”63
63
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):197.
64
Soorah al-Kahf (18):49.
65
Soorah al-Ahqaaf (46):17.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 30
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Whoever” in this verse is general, ‘aam, and refers to anyone who would speak
disrespectfully to his or her parents.
( $yJÎgÎ/ š’§q©Ütƒ br& Ïmø‹n=tã yy$oYã_ Ÿxsù t•yJtFôã$# Írr& |MøŠt7ø9$# ¢kym ô`yJsù )
“Whoever (man) makes hajj or ‘umrah to the House (of Allaah, [i.e.
the Ka‘bah]) may circle them without any blame.”66
and,
“Wherever you may be, you should turn your faces toward it (the
Ka‘bah).”68
66
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):158.
67
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):197.
68
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):150.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 31
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The generic noun amr is related to the possessive pronoun hi, making it general.
The warning is directed at those who oppose any of the Prophet’s instructions.
Likewise, the verse,
69
Soorah an-Noor (24):63.
70
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):11.
71
See al-Itqaan, vol.3, pp. 44-5.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 32
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
since Allaah’s knowledge is absolute. Another example can be found in the verse,
as there are no exceptions to this law, whether they be real mothers, stepmothers,
mothers-in-law, or mothers by ridaa‘ (suckling).
Second, there is the figurative ‘aam in which the general meaning of the
expression was never intended; for example, the verse,
öNèdöqt±÷z$$sù öNä3s9 (#qãèuKy_ ô‰s% }¨$¨Z9$# ¨bÎ) â¨$¨Z9$# ãNßgs9 tA$s% tûïÏ%©!$# )
“Those to whom the people (an-naas) said, ‘The people have gathered
against you, so fear them.’ ”74
The first expression “the people” refers specifically to Nu‘aym ibn Mas‘ood and
the second refers to Aboo Sufyaan and the Qurayshee army, and not the generality
which the expression implies.75
And third, there is the specified ‘aam, wherein the generality of the ‘aam
expression is qualified by one of the specifying words or phrases. For example,
Allaah’s command in the Qur’aan,
72
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):176.
73
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):23.
74
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):173.
75
Al-Itqaan, vol. 3, p. 45.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 33
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The generality of “all people” is specified by the adjectival clause following it.
Expressions of Takhsees
Takhsees (specification of the general) is accomplished by specifying words
or phrases found either within the general statements themselves or outside of
them. The five types which occur within general statements are as follows:77
1. Istithnaa (exception):
In this case the general law is followed by a preposition
of exception and a clause or phrase which qualifies it. A good example can be
seen in the following verse:
A#»n=Åz ô`ÏiB Nßgè=ã_ö‘r&ur óOÎgƒÏ‰÷ƒr& yì©Üs)è? ÷rr& (#þqç6¯=|Áム÷rr& (#þqè=-Gs)ムbr& #·Š$|¡sù
’Îû óOßgs9ur ( $u‹÷R‘‰9$# ’Îû Ó“÷“Åz óOßgs9 š•Ï9ºsŒ 4 ÇÚö‘F{$# šÆÏB (#öqxÿYム÷rr&
(#râ‘ωø)s? br& È@ö6s% `ÏB (#qç/$s? šúïÏ%©!$# žwÎ) ÇÌÌÈ íOŠÏàtã ë>#x‹tã Íot•ÅzFy$#
76
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):97.
77
Al-Itqaan, vol. 3, pp. 46-7.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 34
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Verily, for those who (allatheena) wage war against Allaah and His
Messenger and spread corruption in the land, the penalty is execution,
crucifixion, severing opposite hands and legs, or banishment from the
land. That is their disgrace in this life, and in the next life they will
receive a severe punishment, except those who repent before they are
caught.”78
2. Sifah (modification):
This type refers mainly to relative clauses introduced by the relative pronouns
allathee, allatee (who, which), and their derivatives. An example of this type of
specification can be found in the following verse concerning the forbidden
categories of marriage:
That is, a man’s stepdaughter by a wife with whom he had sexual intercourse is
forbidden to him if he divorces his wife or if she dies. However, if he divorced her
before consummating the marriage or if she died before he did so, he would be
able to marry her daughter (his stepdaughter). Thus, the relative clause, “whom
you have entered” specifies the general phrase, “step-daughters of your wives.”
3. Shart (condition):
Conditional clauses function as specifiers since they state the dependence of
one circumstance or set of circumstances on another. Such clauses are usually
introduced by a subordinator such as “ in” (if). For example, the verse,
78
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):33-4.
79
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 35
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
èp§‹Ï¹uqø9$# #·Žö•yz x8t•s? bÎ) ßNöqyJø9$# ãNä.y‰tnr& uŽ|Øym #sŒÎ) öNä3ø‹n=tæ |=ÏGä. )
“It is prescribed upon you that you bequeath a good portion (of your
wealth) for your parents and close relations when death approaches
any of you (ahadakum), if (in) you have left some wealth; an obligation
on those who fear God.”80
Thus the general obligation of writing a will when death approaches is turned into
an obligation only for those who possess wealth.
4. Ghaayah (clauses of time):
Adverbial clauses of time are usually introduced by the subordinator “hattaa”
(until) and accompanied by a negative. Good examples of this type of
specification are Allaah’s statements concerning the rites of hajj,
“Do not shave your heads until (hattaa) your sacrificial animal has
reached its appointed place (of sacrifice),”81
“Do not come near them (for sexual intercourse) until ( hattaa) they
have reached a state of purity.”82
80
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):180.
81
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):196.
82
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):222.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 36
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Allaah has a right on all people (an-naas) to make hajj to the House;
whoever (man) is able to find a way there.”83
In Arabic, the subordinator “whoever” represents a part of the phrase “all people”
and is substituted in its place. Hence the verse could be translated, “Allaah has a
right on whoever is able to find a way that they make hajj to the House
(Ka‘bah).”
1. Qur’aan:
A general Qur’aanic statement may become specified by another verse found
elsewhere in the Qur’aan. A good example of this type of qualification can be
seen in the following case:
83
Soorah Aal ‘Imraan (3):97.
84
See al-Itqaan, vol. 3, pp. 47-8.
85
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):228.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 37
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
This statement includes all categories of divorced women, whether they are
pregnant or not and whether the marriage was consummated or not. However, this
generality was qualified by the following verses,
“O you who believe, if you marry believing women, then divorce them
before touching them (consum-mation), you have no right on them for
an ‘iddah.”87
That is, the waiting period for pregnant divorced women may be as long as nine
months, while the divorced woman of an unconsummated marriage has no‘iddah
at all. Thus the verse is specifically in reference to divorced women who are not
pregnant and whose marriages were consummated.
2. Sunnah:
General statements in the Qur’aan may also be qualified by statements
(hadeeths) of Prophet Muhammad (r). A significant part of the Prophet’s role
was that of explaining the generalities of the Qur’aan. For example, the general
verse which has been previously mentioned,
86
Soorah at-Talaaq (65):4.
87
Soorah al-Ahzaab (33):49.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 38
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Allaah has made all trade allowable and forbidden all forms of
interest,”88
refers only to correct forms of trade. Statements from the Sunnah have excluded
certain categories of trade and classified them as being corrupt. Ibn ‘Umar
reported that Allaah’s Messenger (r) forbade trade in “the semen of male
animals”89 and also forbade the sale of “a pregnant animal’s progeny before its
delivery.”90 Ibn ‘Umar explained that in pre-Islaamic times a man would sell the
offspring of a she-camel not yet born of an existing she-camel.
There are a few cases wherein hadeeths of the Prophet (r) have been made
specific by verses of the Qur’aan. A good example of this type of takhsees is the
hadeeth narrated by the sahaabee Aboo Waaqid al-Laythee, who reported that the
Prophet (r) said,
88
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):275.
89
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 3, p. 267, no. 484.
90
Collected by al-Bukhaaree (Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 3, p. 199, no. 353) and Muslim (Sahih
Muslim, vol. 3, p. 798, no. 3615).
91
Collected by Aboo Daawood (Sunan Abu Dawud, vol. 2, p. 803, no. 2852), Ibn Maajah and ad-
Daarimee and authenticated by al-Albanee in Saheeh Sunan Abee Daawood, vol. 2, p. 552, no.
2485.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 39
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And from their wool, fur, and hair (Allaah made for you) luxuries
and useful articles (to serve you) for a time.”92
MUTLAQ (ABSOLUTE) AND MUQAYYAD (QUALIFIED)
This pair of concepts is similar to the paired concepts, ‘aamm and khaass. A
major difference is that the word which is ‘aamm encompasses every member of
the category it names, whereas the mutlaq word usually applies to any one of a
multitude, but not to all. 93 For instance, if I say to a servant, “Give ten dollars to
every high school graduate who comes to the house,” this expression is ‘aamm.
The servant would not be in compliance with my command unless he gives ten
dollars to every individual who meets those qualifications. On the other hand, if I
told him, “Give ten dollars to a (miskeen) poor person,”94 this expression is
mutlaq. He would be in compliance if he gave it to a single individual who is
poor.
The mutlaq may be defined as a word or phrase which expresses a non-
figurative idea without placing any limitations on it. It refers to one type of thing
without being specific and usually occurs in the form of an indefinite noun (an-
nakirah) in an affirmative statement. Terms like “a slave,” “a chair,” or “a dog”
would be mutlaq, whereas “a believing slave,” “a metal chair,” or “a Filipino
man” would all be muqayyad, because each indefinite noun has been qualified
and restricted by an adjective (sifah).
Allaah states in the Qur’aan that the expiation for breaking oaths in God’s
name is either,
92
Soorah an-Nahl (16):80.
93
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, p. 113. This is based on a definition of the mutlaq
given by many ‘usool scholars, such as Ibn Qudaamah and al-Aamidee. The definition has been
criticized by other scholars, such as as-Subkee. See Kashf al-Asraar , vol. 2, p. 520.
94
An English speaker might say that a qualification has occurred in this statement, because “poor”
is an adjective qualifying the noun “person.” However, in Arabic there is a single noun, miskeen,
for this concept.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 40
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
There are no limitations as to what type of slave may be freed. However, the type
of slave has been restricted in the following verse:
#’n<Î) îpyJ¯=|¡•B ×ptƒÏŠur 7poYÏB÷s•B 7pt7s%u‘ 㕃̕óstGsù $\«sÜyz $·YÏB÷sãB Ÿ@tFs% `tBur )
( ÿ¾Ï&Î#÷dr&
One of the issues discussed by the scholars of usool al-fiqh is the permissibly
of applying a muqayyad expression from one text of the Qur’aan or Sunnah to a
mutlaq expression in another text. There are certain circumstances in which there
is consensus of the permissibility of this deductive tool, and there are other
circumstances where scholars agree it is not allowed to do so, and there are
circumstances in which there is some difference of opinion. In order to clarify the
issue, the mutlaq and muqayyad verses have been placed in four main categories
in relation to the underlying reason (sabab) for their revelation and the agreement
or disagreement of the rules (hukm) which they contain.
95
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):89.
96
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):92.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 41
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( óOçFøÿn=ym #sŒÎ) öNä3ÏY»yJ÷ƒr& äot•»¤ÿx. y7Ï9ºsŒ 4 5Q$-ƒr& ÏpsW»n=rO ãP$u‹ÅÁsù ô‰Ågs† óO©9 `yJsù )
“And whoever is unable (to do the previous three options) should fast
three days; that is the atonement for breaking your oaths after taking
them.”97
br& HwÎ) ÿ¼çmßJyèôÜtƒ 5OÏã$sÛ 4’n?tã $·B§•ptèC ¥’n<Î) zÓÇrré& !$tB ’Îû ߉É`r& Hw @è% )
97
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):89.
98
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):173.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 42
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Say (O Prophet r), ‘In all that has been revealed to me, I do not find
anything forbidden to eat, if one wants to eat of it, unless it is carrion
or blood poured forth...’ ”
Since the mutlaq and the muqayyad both deal with prohibited foods, it is valid to
say that the only type of prohibited blood is that which is poured forth. Therefore,
the blood that seeps from meat while it is being cooked is not prohibited.99
the word “hands” in making wudoo’ is muqayyad; whereas in the same verse
concerning tayammum, it is left mutlaq: 103
99
See Kashf al-Asraar , vol. 2, p. 527.
100
Hand (yad) in Arabic could refer to the palm up to the wrist, up to the elbow, or up to the
shoulder.
101
Purification with dust or clean earth in the absence of water.
102
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):6.
103
A person may ask, “Why is this verse considered muqayyad rather than mukhassas? Isn’t it true
that one of the forms for expressing the ‘aamm in Arabic is the generic noun related to a
possessive pronoun?” However, one should keep in mind that one of the conditions of the ‘aamm
is that it applies to many things, not limited in number. Each human being has two hands, which is
a limited number.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 43
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Make tayammum with good (clean) earth; Wipe your faces and hands
with it.”104
In these examples, the sabab (loss of one’s state of purity) is the same in both
cases; however, the hukm is different in that water is used in the case of wudoo’
and more body parts are cleaned; whereas dust is used only on the face and hands
in the case of tayammum. Hence, the mutlaq should not be interpreted according
to the muqayyad. In fact, authentic hadeeths describing tayammum specify the
wrists as the limit. The sahaabee ‘Ammaar ibn Yaasir reported that the Prophet
(r) told him to strike both of his hands on the ground once, blow on them, and
then wipe his face and hands, left hand on right, up to the wrists.105
3. Different sabab but same hukm:
The atonement (kaffaarah) of freeing a slave is a good example of this
category. In the case of accidental murder, the word slave is muqayyad:
$·YÏB÷sãB Ÿ@tFs% `tBur 4 $\«sÜyz žwÎ) $·ZÏB÷sãB Ÿ@çFø)tƒ br& ?`ÏB÷sßJÏ9 šc%x. $tBur )
104
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):6.
105
Sahih Al-Bukhari, vol. 1, pp. 208-9, no. 343, and Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, p. 202, nos. 716-8.
106
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):92.
107
A quasi-divorce practiced by pre-Islaamic Arabs. The husband would swear not to touch his
wife because he considered her “like his mother.” The wife was not free to look for another
husband, but she was denied conjugal rights.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 44
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
7pt7s%u‘ 㕃̕óstGsù (#qä9$s% $yJÏ9 tbrߊqãètƒ §NèO öNÍkɲ!$|¡ÎpS `ÏB tbrã•Îg»sàムtûïÏ%©!$#ur )
“Those who swear off their wives, then wish to go back on what they
said, should free a slave before they touch each other.”108
There is obviously no basis here for interpreting the mutlaq according to the
muqayyad. A believer’s life was taken, hence the requirement is that the freed
slave be a believer; whereas in the case of breaking of oaths made by thihaar or
otherwise, the freeing of any slave is sufficient.
4. Different sabab and different hukm:
An example of this category is in the case of the hand in wudoo’ and theft. In
the verse on purification previously mentioned, the hand is made muqayyad by
the phrase, “up to the elbows,” but in the case of theft, it is left mutlaq. Consider
the following:
“Cut off the hands of both the male and female thief.”109
Here again, the mutlaq cannot be specified by the muqayyad, especially since it
was reported that the Prophet (r) limited the amputation of hands to the wrist and
so did the Righteous Caliphs.110
108
Soorah al-Mujaadalah (58):3.
109
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):38.
110
See Kashf al-Asraar , vol. 2, pp. 521-7.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 45
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
words or expressions are referred to as mantooq, while those derived from their
implications are called mafhoom.
Mantooq (explicit) meanings may be derived in five different ways,
depending on the type of Arabic grammatical construction used.
1. Nass (explicit):
This method of deriving the mantooq meaning refers to any expression which
clearly indicates an idea, leaving no room for other interpretations; for example,
the following verse orders those who intend hajj tamattu‘, but are unable to
slaughter an animal:
×ouŽ|³tã y7ù=Ï? 3 öNçF÷èy_u‘ #sŒÎ) >pyèö7y™ur Ædkptø:$# ’Îû 5Q$-ƒr& ÏpsW»n=rO ãP$u‹ÅÁsù )
( ×'s#ÏB%x.
“You should fast three days during hajj and seven days when you
return (home); those make a complete (kaamilah) ten (days).”111
The adjective (sifah) “complete” removes any doubt that ten meant approximately
ten, according to figurative usage.
2. Thaahir (obvious):
This term refers to the most obvious and likely meaning of a given expression
which could indicate another, though less likely, meaning. An example of the
thaahir can be found in the verse referring to the consumption of forbidden meats:
111
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):196.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 46
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The term “ baaghin” could also mean “ignorant,” but in this context the meaning
“willfully disobedient” is more obviously suited. Another example of this type of
expression is the verse concerning sexual relations with menstruating women:
“And do not come near them (menstruating women) until they have
become pure (yat-hurna).”113
“ Yat-hurna” could mean either the end of the menstrual cycle, making wudoo’114
or taking a ghusl.115 However, the likelihood of it meaning a ghusl is greater than
the other possible meanings.
3. Mu’awwal (explained):
In this case, the obvious meaning of an expression is avoided due to its
inappropriateness. That is, the less obvious meaning of the expression is favored
due to some factor(s) which disallow the obvious meaning. For example, Allaah
commands us in our relations with parents as follows:
112
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):173.
113
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):222.
114
Washing the face, hands and feet and wiping the hair.
115
A complete bath.
116
Soorah al-Israa’ (17):24.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 47
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
( ... öNä3ydqã_ãr
“O you who believe, when you stand to pray, wash your faces...”
The apparent meaning of the verse is that one must perform wudoo’ after one
stands to perform salaah. Since there is no record of the Prophet (r) and his
companions making a habit of performing wudoo’ after the iqaamah was called,
the scholars agree that the intended meaning is that one must perform wudoo’
when one intends to pray, and then only if one has lost his previous wudoo’. The
second point is disputed by the Thaahiree school, who adhere to the literal
implication of the verse. The majority of scholars argue against them on the basis
of the hadeeth of Sulaymaan ibn Buraydah that the Prophet (r) prayed all the
prayers with a single wudoo’ on the day of his victorious reentry into Makkah.
When ‘Umar asked him about it, remarking that he had never seen him do so
before, the Prophet (r) told him,
4. Iqtidaa (necessity):
Sometimes the correct meaning of an Arabic expression depends on the
supposition of a deleted word or phrase. Such a method of derivation of a
mantooq meaning is called “dalaalah al-iqtidaa ;” that is, indication of the
meaning by a necessary supposition.118 A classical example of this type can be
found in the verse on fasting:
( t•yzé& BQ$-ƒr& ô`ÏiB ×o£‰Ïèsù 9•xÿy™ 4’n?tã ÷rr& $³ÒƒÍ•£D Nä3ZÏB šc%x. `yJsù )
117
Sahih Muslim, vol. 1, pp. 165-6, no. 540.
118
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, pp. 128-30.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 48
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The phrase, “ fa aftara” (“and breaks fast”), has to be supposed after “travelling,”
because a traveller is only required to make up days of fasting if he or she breaks
fast while travelling. Likewise, one who is sick but does not break his or her fast
would have no fasts to make up.120
5. Ishaarah (suggestion):
At other times, an expression may indicate a secondary meaning without
requiring any supposition of words or phrases. This type of mantooq meaning is
called “ dilaalah al-ishaarah;” that is, indication of the meaning by suggestion. If
one considers, for example, the verse:
öNä3©9 Ó¨$t6Ï9 £`èd 4 öNä3ͬ!$|¡ÎS 4’n<Î) ß]sù§•9$# ÏQ$uŠÅ_Á9$# s's#ø‹s9 öNà6s9 ¨@Ïmé& )
ª!$# |=tFŸ2 $tB (#qäótFö/$#ur £`èdrçŽÅ³»t/ z`»t«ø9$$sù ( öNä3Ytã $xÿtãur öNä3ø‹n=tæ z>$tGsù
ÅÝø‹sƒø:$# z`ÏB âÙu‹ö/F{$# äÝø‹sƒø:$# ãNä3s9 tû¨üt7oKtƒ 4Ó®Lym (#qç/uŽõ°$#ur (#qè=ä.ur 4 öNä3s9
“Intercourse with your wives is permitted for you during the nights of
the (month of fasting...so go to them and seek what Allaah has written
119
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):184.
120
This is the position of the four math-habs. They were opposed by the Thaahirees.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 49
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
for you; and eat and drink until the white thread of the dawn becomes
distinct to you from the black thread (of the night).”121
This indicates that it is acceptable to begin the fast in a state of janaabah,122 since
intercourse is allowable at night up until dawn, possibly leaving no opportunity
for one to regain his or her state of purity by bathing; thus, entering the morning
of a fast in a state of impurity must, of necessity, be allowable.
121
Soorah al-Baqarah (2):187.
122
A state of impurity caused by sexual intercourse. It is removed by a ghusl (Islaamic bath).
123
See Principles of Islamic Jurisprudence, pp. 132-7.
124
“ Uff” literally means dirt in the ears or under the fingernails, but is used as an interjection
expressing displeasure. The verse is from Soorah al-Israa’ (17):23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 50
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The mantooq here forbids the saying of “ Uff” to parents, and the mafhoom is that
cursing them or hitting them is also forbidden. Another example may be found in
the verse on the property of orphans:
125
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):10.
126
It is also called al-qiyaas al-jalee, the obvious analogy.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 51
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
The mafhoom here is that they should be given no more nor less than eighty
lashes. Also, in the verse concerning hunting during hajj,
the mafhoom meaning here is that the accidental killing of an animal does not
necessitate a sacrifice. In each of the preceding cases, the mafhoom al-
mukhaalafah yields a valid ruling. However, where the mantooq is a description
of a common circumstance which is not true in all cases, the mafhoom al-
mukhaalafah will be false. For example, in the verse prohibiting marriage to
stepdaughters,
127
Soorah al-Hujuraat (49):6.
128
Soorah an-Noor (24):4.
129
A state of consecration one enters for hajj or ‘umrah, in which one refrains from sex, cutting of
the hair, wearing perfume, etc., and in the case of men, regular clothing is replaced by two sheet-
like garments.
130
Soorah al-Maa’idah (5):95.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 52
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
the mafhoom al-mukhaalafah is that stepdaughters not under your care may be
taken in marriage. However, this is not the case. The phrase “under your care”
only addresses the usual situation and not a condition of prohibition. This
interpretation, agreed upon between the four math-habs, is strengthened by the
fact that the verse mentions two qualifications for the step-daughters:
“And your stepdaughters under your care (born) of your wives with
whom you have consummated marriage—but if you have not gone
into them, then there is no sin for you (to marry their daughters after
the death or divorce of the mothers)...”132
It then goes on to explicitly state that if the second condition does not hold, the
prohibition doesn’t apply. It makes no mention of this exception when the first
condition is missing.
The other case of an incorrect mafhoom al-mukhaalafah is when the mantooq
is an explanation of a certain reality. For example, the verse,
¼çmç/$|¡Ïm $yJ¯RÎ*sù ¾ÏmÎ/ ¼çms9 z`»ydö•ç/ Ÿw t•yz#uä $·g»s9Î) «!$# yìtB äíô‰tƒ `tBur )
131
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):23.
132
Soorah an-Nisaa’ (4):23.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 53
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“And whoever worships another god along with Allaah with no proof
of it (being real), his account is only with his Lord. Verily, the rejecters
of faith will not prosper.”133
The mafhoom of the verse is that if someone has proof of another god’s reality, he
may worship it along with Allaah. This is incorrect, because there is no valid
proof of any other god’s reality, since no other god exists besides Allaah. The
phrase “with no proof of it being real” was added for emphasis and to ridicule
those who worship other gods (idols) besides Allaah. Hence, the majority of
scholars accept the rules derived from the mafhoom al-mukhaalafah as long as the
conditions of the mantooq are not descriptions of a common circumstance or an
explanation of reality.134
133
Soorah al-Mu’minoon (23):117.
134
Aboo Haneefah alone rejected the use of mafhoom al-mukhaalafah.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 54
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
CONCLUSION
135
Soorah at-Tawbah (9):31.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 55
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
One of the main methods of this movement is that a position on a given issue
is taken, then evidence is sought to support it. One of their favorite tactics is to
argue on the basis of a particular verse on an issue, often according to their own
new interpretation, while ignoring other verses which make their interpretation
impossible. A classic example of this is the distorted tafseer of verse 62 of Soorah
al-Baqarah:
óOÎgÎn/u‘ y‰YÏã öNèdã•ô_r& öNßgn=sù $[sÎ=»|¹ Ÿ@ÏJtãur Ì•ÅzFy$# ÏQöqu‹ø9$#ur «!$$Î/ z`tB#uä
“Verily, those who believe, and those who are Jews, and Christians,
and Sabaeans—whoever believes in Allaah and the Last Day and does
right—they will have their reward with their Lord and there will be
no fear upon them neither will they grieve.”
They say this verse is clear proof that Jews and Christians are believers, that we
are all brothers and that the only criteria for entry into paradise are belief in
Allaah and the Day of Judgment along with good deeds. However, Muslim
scholars throughout history have interpreted this verse in light of verses 150-1 of
Soorah an-Nisaa’:
«!$# tû÷üt/ (#qè%Ìh•xÿムbr& šcr߉ƒÌ•ãƒur ¾Ï&Î#ß™â‘ur «!$$Î/ tbrã•àÿõ3tƒ šúïÏ%©!$# ¨bÎ) )
tûïÌ•Ïÿ»s3ù=Ï9 $tRô‰tFôãr&ur 4 $y)ym tbrã•Ïÿ»s3ø9$# ãNèd y7Í´¯»s9'ré& ÇÊÎÉÈ ¸x‹Î6y™ y7Ï9ºsŒ tû÷üt/
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 56
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
“Verily, those who disbelieve in Allaah and His messengers and want
to make a distinction between Allaah and His messengers, and who
say, ‘We believe in some and disbelieve in others,’ and want to pursue
a path in-between—they are truly disbelievers; and I have prepared a
humiliating torment for the disbe-lievers.”
This passage clearly refers to the Jews, who deny that Jesus and Muhammad
(peace be upon them both) were prophets, and the Christians, who deny
Muhammad’s prophethood.136
How then could Jews and Christians who heard about Muhammad (r) and
rejected his prophethood be promised that they would get a reward and have
nothing to fear? A person who interprets the verse from Soorah al-Baqarah in
that way has taken a position that requires the Qur’aan to contradict itself, which
is in itself a position of disbelief. Therefore, the consensus of Muslim scholars is
that there are two valid possible interpretations of the verse. The first is that Jews
at the time of Moses and Christians at the time of Jesus who believed in Allaah
and followed the prophet sent to them have been promised this reward. The other
is that after the mission of Prophet Muhammad (r), the stated reward is for those
among the various religious groups who believe in Allaah and the Last Day and
do good as defined in the final revelation, having believed in Muhammad (r) as a
prophet sent to them.137 These two interpretations take into account all of the
evidence (of which only a fraction has been mentioned for the sake of brevity),
while the first does not.
Another common technique to be wary of is tafseer of the Qur’aan solely on
the basis of linguistic meanings of the words. For such tafseers to sound plausible,
the Sunnah must be ignored. You see some of them rejecting a hadeeth because it
was only reported by a handful of sahaabah! This methodology has been a
common feature of deviant pseudo-Islaamic groups throughout history.
Hopefully, the reader, after finishing this book, will be able to recognize the flaws
in such agenda-driven reinterpretations. I ask Allaah to guide all of us to that
which pleases Him and to save us from ruin in the hereafter.
136
See Tafseer Ibn Katheer, vol. 1, p. 585, al-Jaami‘ li Ahkaam al-Qur’aan, vol. 6, pp. 5-6, and
Tafseer at-Tabaree, vol. 4, pp. 343-4.
137
See Tafseer Ibn Katheer , vol. 1, pp. 107-8, al-Jaami‘ li Ahkaam al-Qur’aan, vol.1, pp. 295-6,
Tafseer at-Tabaree, vol. 1, pp. 361-5 and Rooh al-Ma‘aanee, vol. 1, p. 280.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 57
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 58
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
BIBLIOGRAPHY
English Books
Arberry, Arthur J. The Koran Interpreted. London: George Allen & Unwin, 1980.
Asad, Muhammad. The Message of the Qur’an. Gibraltar: Dar al-Andulus, 1980.
Bucaille, Maurice. Moses and Pharaoah: The Hebrews in Egypt. Tokyo: NTT
Mediascope, 1st ed. 1994.
Cragg, Kenneth. The Mind of the Qur’an. London: George Allen & Unwin, 1973.
Gibb, H.A.R. and J.H. Kramers. Shorter Encyclopaedia of Islam. New York:
Cornell University Press, 1953.
Graham, William. Beyond the Written Word. UK: Cambridge University Press,
1993.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 3
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Haddad, Yvonne and Jane Smith. Mission to America. Miami, Florida: University
Press of Florida, 1993.
Hasan, Ahmad. Sunan Abu Dawud. English Trans. Lahore: Sh. Muhammad
Ashraf Publishers, 1st ed., 1987.
Irving, Thomas B. The Noble Qur’an: Arabic Text and English Translation.
Brattleboro, Vt.: Amana Books, 1992.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 4
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Maududi, Syed Abu’l A‘la. The Meaning of the Qur’an. Lahore: Islamic
Publications, 14th ed. 1994.
Moore, Keith L., Abdul-Majeed Zindani and Mustafa Ahmed. The Qur’an and
Modern Science: Correlation Studies. Falls Church, Virginia: World
Assembly of Muslim Youth, n.d. Originally published by Islamic Academy
for Scientific Research, Makkah, Saudi Arabia, 1990.
Njozi, Hamza Mustafa. The Sources of the Qur’an: A Critical Review of the
Authorship Theories. Falls Church, Virginia: World Assembly of Muslim
Youth, n.d..
Philips, Abu Ameenah Bilal. The Qur’an’s Numerical Miracle: Hoax and Heresy.
Jeddah: Abul Qasim Bookstore, 1987.
The Holy Bible, Revised Standard Version. New York and Glasgow: William
Collins and Sons, 2nd ed. 1971.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 5
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Zaheer, Ehsan Elahi. Qadiyaniyat. Lahore: Idara Tarjuman Al-Sunnah, 2nd ed.
1973.
Arabic Books
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 6
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
----------. Saheeh Sunan at-Tirmithee. Beirut: al-Maktab al-Islaamee, 1st ed., 1988.
----------. Silsilah al-Ahaadeeth ad-Da‘eefah. Kuwait: ad-Daar as-Salafeeyah, 1st
ed., 1979.
----------. Silsilah al-Ahaadeeth as-Saheehah. Kuwait: ad-Daar as-Salafeeyah, 2nd
ed., 1983.
Bannaa’, Ahmad ibn Muhammad al-. Ithaaf Fudallaa’ al-Bashar fee al-Qiraa’aat
al-‘Arba‘ ‘Ashar . Beirut: Daar an-Nadwah al-Jadeedah, n.d..
Bukhaaree, ‘Abdul-‘Azeez ibn Ahmad al-. Kashf al-Asraar ‘an Usool Fakhr al-
Islaam al-Bazdawee. Beirut: Daar al-Kitaab al-‘Arabee, 1st ed. 1991.
Ibn Hajar al-‘Asqalaanee, Ahmad ibn ‘Alee. Fat-h al-Baaree. Cairo, Egypt: al-
Matba‘ah as-Salafeeyah Co., 1st ed., 1961.
----------. Taqreeb at-Tahtheeb. Beirut: Daar al-Ma‘rifah, 2nd ed., 1975.
----------. al-Isaabah fee Tamyeez as-Sahaabah. Beirut: Dar al-Fikr, 1978.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 7
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Ibn Qayyim al-Jawzeeyah, Muhammad ibn Abee Bakr. Zaad al-Ma‘aad fee Hady
Khayr al-‘Ibaad. Beirut: Mu’assasah ar-Risaalah, 1992.
Madkhalee, Rabee‘ ibn Haadee al-. Adwaa’un Islaameeyah ‘alaa ‘Aqeedah Syed
Qutb wa Fikrih. Madeenah: Maktabah al-Ghurabaa’ al-Athareeyah, 1414.
Noor, Yoosuf Ibraaheem al-. Ma‘ al-Masaahif. Dubai: Dar al-Manar, 1st ed. 1993.
Qattaan, Mannaa‘ al-. Mabaahith fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan. Riyadh, Saudi Arabia:
Maktabah al-Ma’aarif, 8th ed., 1981.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 8
© Islamic Online University Usool at-Tafseer
Suyootee, ‘Abd ar-Rahmaan, as-. al-Itqaan fee ‘Uloom al-Qur’aan. Cairo: al-
Halabi Press, 4th ed., 1978. Also, Cairo: Daar at-Turaath, n.d.
Tabaree, Muhammad ibn Jareer at-. Jaami‘ al-Bayaan ‘an Ta’weel al-Qur’aan.
Beirut: Daar al-Kutub al‘Ilmeeyah, 1st ed., 1992.
Tabaraanee, Sulaymaan ibn Ahmad at-. al-Mu‘jam al-Kabeer . Beirut: Daar Ihyaa’
at-Turaath al-‘Arabee, 2nd ed. 1404 AH.
Thahabee, Muhammad Husayn ath-. at-Tafseer wa al-Mufassiroon. Cairo:
Maktabah Wahbah, 6th ed. 1995.
http://www.islamiconlineuniversity.com 9